The
Innocence Of Father Brown
G.
K. Chesterton
The Blue Cross
Between the silver ribbon of morning and the green
glittering ribbon of sea, the boat touched Harwich and let loose a swarm of
folk like flies, among whom the man we must follow was by no means
conspicuous—nor wished to be. There was nothing notable about him, except a
slight contrast between the holiday gaiety of his clothes and the official
gravity of his face. His clothes included a slight, pale grey jacket, a white
waistcoat, and a silver straw hat with a grey-blue ribbon. His lean face was
dark by contrast, and ended in a curt black beard that looked Spanish and
suggested an Elizabethan ruff. He was smoking a cigarette with the seriousness
of an idler. There was nothing about him to indicate the fact that the grey
jacket covered a loaded revolver, that the white waistcoat covered a police
card, or that the straw hat covered one of the most powerful intellects in
Flambeau was in
It is many years now since this colossus of crime suddenly
ceased keeping the world in a turmoil; and when he ceased, as they said after
the death of Roland, there was a great quiet upon the earth. But in his best
days (I mean, of course, his worst) Flambeau was a figure as statuesque and
international as the Kaiser. Almost every morning the daily paper announced
that he had escaped the consequences of one extraordinary crime by committing
another. He was a Gascon of gigantic stature and bodily daring; and the wildest
tales were told of his outbursts of athletic humour; how he turned the juge
d'instruction upside down and stood him on his head, “to clear his mind”; how
he ran down the Rue de Rivoli with a policeman under each arm. It is due to him
to say that his fantastic physical strength was generally employed in such
bloodless though undignified scenes; his real crimes were chiefly those of
ingenious and wholesale robbery. But each of his thefts was almost a new sin,
and would make a story by itself. It was he who ran the great Tyrolean Dairy
Company in London, with no dairies, no cows, no carts, no milk, but with some
thousand subscribers. These he served by the simple operation of moving the
little milk cans outside people's doors to the doors of his own customers. It
was he who had kept up an unaccountable and close correspondence with a young
lady whose whole letter-bag was intercepted, by the extraordinary trick of
photographing his messages infinitesimally small upon the slides of a microscope.
A sweeping simplicity, however, marked many of his experiments. It is said that
he once repainted all the numbers in a street in the dead of night merely to
divert one traveller into a trap. It is quite certain that he invented a
portable pillar-box, which he put up at corners in quiet suburbs on the chance
of strangers dropping postal orders into it. Lastly, he was known to be a
startling acrobat; despite his huge figure, he could leap like a grasshopper
and melt into the tree-tops like a monkey. Hence the great Valentin, when he
set out to find Flambeau, was perfectly aware that his adventures would not end
when he had found him.
But how was he to find him? On this the great Valentin's
ideas were still in process of settlement.
There was one thing which Flambeau, with all his dexterity
of disguise, could not cover, and that was his singular height. If Valentin's
quick eye had caught a tall apple-woman, a tall grenadier, or even a tolerably
tall duchess, he might have arrested them on the spot. But all along his train
there was nobody that could be a disguised Flambeau, any more than a cat could
be a disguised giraffe. About the people on the boat he had already satisfied
himself; and the people picked up at Harwich or on the journey limited themselves
with certainty to six. There was a short railway official travelling up to the
terminus, three fairly short market gardeners picked up two stations
afterwards, one very short widow lady going up from a small Essex town, and a
very short Roman Catholic priest going up from a small Essex village. When it
came to the last case, Valentin gave it up and almost laughed. The little
priest was so much the essence of those Eastern flats; he had a face as round
and dull as a Norfolk dumpling; he had eyes as empty as the North Sea; he had
several brown paper parcels, which he was quite incapable of collecting. The
Eucharistic Congress had doubtless sucked out of their local stagnation many
such creatures, blind and helpless, like moles disinterred. Valentin was a sceptic
in the severe style of France, and could have no love for priests. But he could
have pity for them, and this one might have provoked pity in anybody. He had a
large, shabby umbrella, which constantly fell on the floor. He did not seem to
know which was the right end of his return ticket. He explained with a
moon-calf simplicity to everybody in the carriage that he had to be careful,
because he had something made of real silver “with blue stones” in one of his
brown-paper parcels. His quaint blending of Essex flatness with saintly
simplicity continuously amused the Frenchman till the priest arrived (somehow)
at Tottenham with all his parcels, and came back for his umbrella. When he did
the last, Valentin even had the good nature to warn him not to take care of the
silver by telling everybody about it. But to whomever he talked, Valentin kept
his eye open for someone else; he looked out steadily for anyone, rich or poor,
male or female, who was well up to six feet; for Flambeau was four inches above
it.
He alighted at Liverpool Street, however, quite
conscientiously secure that he had not missed the criminal so far. He then went
to Scotland Yard to regularise his position and arrange for help in case of
need; he then lit another cigarette and went for a long stroll in the streets
of London. As he was walking in the streets and squares beyond Victoria, he
paused suddenly and stood. It was a quaint, quiet square, very typical of
London, full of an accidental stillness. The tall, flat houses round looked at
once prosperous and uninhabited; the square of shrubbery in the centre looked
as deserted as a green Pacific islet. One of the four sides was much higher
than the rest, like a dais; and the line of this side was broken by one of
London's admirable accidents—a restaurant that looked as if it had strayed from
Soho. It was an unreasonably attractive object, with dwarf plants in pots and
long, striped blinds of lemon yellow and white. It stood specially high above
the street, and in the usual patchwork way of London, a flight of steps from
the street ran up to meet the front door almost as a fire-escape might run up
to a first-floor window. Valentin stood and smoked in front of the yellow-white
blinds and considered them long.
The most incredible thing about miracles is that they
happen. A few clouds in heaven do come together into the staring shape of one
human eye. A tree does stand up in the landscape of a doubtful journey in the
exact and elaborate shape of a note of interrogation. I have seen both these
things myself within the last few days. Nelson does die in the instant of
victory; and a man named Williams does quite accidentally murder a man named
Williamson; it sounds like a sort of infanticide. In short, there is in life an
element of elfin coincidence which people reckoning on the prosaic may
perpetually miss. As it has been well expressed in the paradox of Poe, wisdom
should reckon on the unforeseen.
Aristide Valentin was unfathomably French; and the French
intelligence is intelligence specially and solely. He was not “a thinking
machine”; for that is a brainless phrase of modern fatalism and materialism. A
machine only is a machine because it cannot think. But he was a thinking man,
and a plain man at the same time. All his wonderful successes, that looked like
conjuring, had been gained by plodding logic, by clear and commonplace French
thought. The French electrify the world not by starting any paradox, they
electrify it by carrying out a truism. They carry a truism so far—as in the
French Revolution. But exactly because Valentin understood reason, he
understood the limits of reason. Only a man who knows nothing of motors talks
of motoring without petrol; only a man who knows nothing of reason talks of
reasoning without strong, undisputed first principles. Here he had no strong
first principles. Flambeau had been missed at Harwich; and if he was in London
at all, he might be anything from a tall tramp on Wimbledon Common to a tall
toast-master at the Hotel Metropole. In such a naked state of nescience, Valentin
had a view and a method of his own.
In such cases he reckoned on the unforeseen. In such cases,
when he could not follow the train of the reasonable, he coldly and carefully
followed the train of the unreasonable. Instead of going to the right places—banks,
police stations, rendezvous—he systematically went to the wrong places; knocked
at every empty house, turned down every cul de sac, went up every lane blocked
with rubbish, went round every crescent that led him uselessly out of the way. He
defended this crazy course quite logically. He said that if one had a clue this
was the worst way; but if one had no clue at all it was the best, because there
was just the chance that any oddity that caught the eye of the pursuer might be
the same that had caught the eye of the pursued. Somewhere a man must begin,
and it had better be just where another man might stop. Something about that
flight of steps up to the shop, something about the quietude and quaintness of
the restaurant, roused all the detective's rare romantic fancy and made him
resolve to strike at random. He went up the steps, and sitting down at a table
by the window, asked for a cup of black coffee.
It was half-way through the morning, and he had not
breakfasted; the slight litter of other breakfasts stood about on the table to
remind him of his hunger; and adding a poached egg to his order, he proceeded
musingly to shake some white sugar into his coffee, thinking all the time about
Flambeau. He remembered how Flambeau had escaped, once by a pair of nail
scissors, and once by a house on fire; once by having to pay for an unstamped
letter, and once by getting people to look through a telescope at a comet that
might destroy the world. He thought his detective brain as good as the
criminal's, which was true. But he fully realised the disadvantage. “The
criminal is the creative artist; the detective only the critic,” he said with a
sour smile, and lifted his coffee cup to his lips slowly, and put it down very
quickly. He had put salt in it.
He looked at the vessel from which the silvery powder had
come; it was certainly a sugar-basin; as unmistakably meant for sugar as a
champagne-bottle for champagne. He wondered why they should keep salt in it. He
looked to see if there were any more orthodox vessels. Yes; there were two
salt-cellars quite full. Perhaps there was some speciality in the condiment in
the salt-cellars. He tasted it; it was sugar. Then he looked round at the
restaurant with a refreshed air of interest, to see if there were any other
traces of that singular artistic taste which puts the sugar in the salt-cellars
and the salt in the sugar-basin. Except for an odd splash of some dark fluid on
one of the white-papered walls, the whole place appeared neat, cheerful and
ordinary. He rang the bell for the waiter.
When that official hurried up, fuzzy-haired and somewhat
blear-eyed at that early hour, the detective (who was not without an
appreciation of the simpler forms of humour) asked him to taste the sugar and
see if it was up to the high reputation of the hotel. The result was that the
waiter yawned suddenly and woke up.
“Do you play this delicate joke on your customers every
morning?” inquired Valentin. “Does changing the salt and sugar never pall on
you as a jest?”
The waiter, when this irony grew clearer, stammeringly
assured him that the establishment had certainly no such intention; it must be
a most curious mistake. He picked up the sugar-basin and looked at it; he
picked up the salt-cellar and looked at that, his face growing more and more bewildered.
At last he abruptly excused himself, and hurrying away, returned in a few
seconds with the proprietor. The proprietor also examined the sugar-basin and
then the salt-cellar; the proprietor also looked bewildered.
Suddenly the waiter seemed to grow inarticulate with a rush
of words.
“I zink,” he stuttered eagerly, “I zink it is those two
clergy-men.”
“What two clergymen?”
“The two clergymen,” said the waiter, “that threw soup at
the wall.”
“Threw soup at the wall?” repeated Valentin, feeling sure
this must be some singular Italian metaphor.
“Yes, yes,” said the attendant excitedly, and pointed at the
dark splash on the white paper; “threw it over there on the wall.”
Valentin looked his query at the proprietor, who came to his
rescue with fuller reports.
“Yes, sir,” he said, “it's quite true, though I don't
suppose it has anything to do with the sugar and salt. Two clergymen came in
and drank soup here very early, as soon as the shutters were taken down. They
were both very quiet, respectable people; one of them paid the bill and went
out; the other, who seemed a slower coach altogether, was some minutes longer
getting his things together. But he went at last. Only, the instant before he
stepped into the street he deliberately picked up his cup, which he had only
half emptied, and threw the soup slap on the wall. I was in the back room
myself, and so was the waiter; so I could only rush out in time to find the
wall splashed and the shop empty. It don't do any particular damage, but it was
confounded cheek; and I tried to catch the men in the street. They were too far
off though; I only noticed they went round the next corner into Carstairs
Street.”
The detective was on his feet, hat settled and stick in
hand. He had already decided that in the universal darkness of his mind he
could only follow the first odd finger that pointed; and this finger was odd
enough. Paying his bill and clashing the glass doors behind him, he was soon
swinging round into the other street.
It was fortunate that even in such fevered moments his eye
was cool and quick. Something in a shop-front went by him like a mere flash;
yet he went back to look at it. The shop was a popular greengrocer and
fruiterer's, an array of goods set out in the open air and plainly ticketed
with their names and prices. In the two most prominent compartments were two
heaps, of oranges and of nuts respectively. On the heap of nuts lay a scrap of
cardboard, on which was written in bold, blue chalk, “Best tangerine oranges,
two a penny.” On the oranges was the equally clear and exact description,
“Finest Brazil nuts, 4d. a lb.” M. Valentin looked at these two placards and
fancied he had met this highly subtle form of humour before, and that somewhat
recently. He drew the attention of the red-faced fruiterer, who was looking
rather sullenly up and down the street, to this inaccuracy in his
advertisements. The fruiterer said nothing, but sharply put each card into its
proper place. The detective, leaning elegantly on his walking-cane, continued
to scrutinise the shop. At last he said, “Pray excuse my apparent irrelevance,
my good sir, but I should like to ask you a question in experimental psychology
and the association of ideas.”
The red-faced shopman regarded him with an eye of menace;
but he continued gaily, swinging his cane, “Why,” he pursued, “why are two
tickets wrongly placed in a greengrocer's shop like a shovel hat that has come
to London for a holiday? Or, in case I do not make myself clear, what is the
mystical association which connects the idea of nuts marked as oranges with the
idea of two clergymen, one tall and the other short?”
The eyes of the tradesman stood out of his head like a
snail's; he really seemed for an instant likely to fling himself upon the
stranger. At last he stammered angrily: “I don't know what you 'ave to do with
it, but if you're one of their friends, you can tell 'em from me that I'll
knock their silly 'eads off, parsons or no parsons, if they upset my apples
again.”
“Indeed?” asked the detective, with great sympathy. “Did
they upset your apples?”
“One of 'em did,” said the heated shopman; “rolled 'em all
over the street. I'd 'ave caught the fool but for havin' to pick 'em up.”
“Which way did these parsons go?” asked Valentin.
“Up that second road on the left-hand side, and then across
the square,” said the other promptly.
“Thanks,” replied Valentin, and vanished like a fairy. On
the other side of the second square he found a policeman, and said: “This is
urgent, constable; have you seen two clergymen in shovel hats?”
The policeman began to chuckle heavily. “I 'ave, sir; and if
you arst me, one of 'em was drunk. He stood in the middle of the road that
bewildered that—”
“Which way did they go?” snapped Valentin.
“They took one of them yellow buses over there,” answered
the man; “them that go to Hampstead.”
Valentin produced his official card and said very rapidly:
“Call up two of your men to come with me in pursuit,” and crossed the road with
such contagious energy that the ponderous policeman was moved to almost agile
obedience. In a minute and a half the French detective was joined on the
opposite pavement by an inspector and a man in plain clothes.
“Well, sir,” began the former, with smiling importance, “and
what may—?”
Valentin pointed suddenly with his cane. “I'll tell you on
the top of that omnibus,” he said, and was darting and dodging across the
tangle of the traffic. When all three sank panting on the top seats of the
yellow vehicle, the inspector said: “We could go four times as quick in a
taxi.”
“Quite true,” replied their leader placidly, “if we only had
an idea of where we were going.”
“Well, where are you going?” asked the other, staring.
Valentin smoked frowningly for a few seconds; then, removing
his cigarette, he said: “If you know what a man's doing, get in front of him;
but if you want to guess what he's doing, keep behind him. Stray when he
strays; stop when he stops; travel as slowly as he. Then you may see what he
saw and may act as he acted. All we can do is to keep our eyes skinned for a
queer thing.”
“What sort of queer thing do you mean?” asked the inspector.
“Any sort of queer thing,” answered Valentin, and relapsed
into obstinate silence.
The yellow omnibus crawled up the northern roads for what
seemed like hours on end; the great detective would not explain further, and
perhaps his assistants felt a silent and growing doubt of his errand. Perhaps,
also, they felt a silent and growing desire for lunch, for the hours crept long
past the normal luncheon hour, and the long roads of the North London suburbs
seemed to shoot out into length after length like an infernal telescope. It was
one of those journeys on which a man perpetually feels that now at last he must
have come to the end of the universe, and then finds he has only come to the
beginning of Tufnell Park. London died away in draggled taverns and dreary
scrubs, and then was unaccountably born again in blazing high streets and
blatant hotels. It was like passing through thirteen separate vulgar cities all
just touching each other. But though the winter twilight was already
threatening the road ahead of them, the Parisian detective still sat silent and
watchful, eyeing the frontage of the streets that slid by on either side. By the
time they had left Camden Town behind, the policemen were nearly asleep; at
least, they gave something like a jump as Valentin leapt erect, struck a hand
on each man's shoulder, and shouted to the driver to stop.
They tumbled down the steps into the road without realising
why they had been dislodged; when they looked round for enlightenment they
found Valentin triumphantly pointing his finger towards a window on the left
side of the road. It was a large window, forming part of the long facade of a
gilt and palatial public-house; it was the part reserved for respectable
dining, and labelled “Restaurant.” This window, like all the rest along the
frontage of the hotel, was of frosted and figured glass; but in the middle of
it was a big, black smash, like a star in the ice.
“Our cue at last,” cried Valentin, waving his stick; “the
place with the broken window.”
“What window? What cue?” asked his principal assistant. “Why,
what proof is there that this has anything to do with them?”
Valentin almost broke his bamboo stick with rage.
“Proof!” he cried. “Good God! the man is looking for proof! Why,
of course, the chances are twenty to one that it has nothing to do with them. But
what else can we do? Don't you see we must either follow one wild possibility
or else go home to bed?” He banged his way into the restaurant, followed by his
companions, and they were soon seated at a late luncheon at a little table, and
looked at the star of smashed glass from the inside. Not that it was very
informative to them even then.
“Got your window broken, I see,” said Valentin to the waiter
as he paid the bill.
“Yes, sir,” answered the attendant, bending busily over the
change, to which Valentin silently added an enormous tip. The waiter
straightened himself with mild but unmistakable animation.
“Ah, yes, sir,” he said. “Very odd thing, that, sir.”
“Indeed?” Tell us about it,” said the detective with
careless curiosity.
“Well, two gents in black came in,” said the waiter; “two of
those foreign parsons that are running about. They had a cheap and quiet little
lunch, and one of them paid for it and went out. The other was just going out
to join him when I looked at my change again and found he'd paid me more than
three times too much. “Here,' I says to the chap who was nearly out of the
door, “you've paid too much. ' “Oh,' he says, very cool, “have we?' 'Yes,' I
says, and picks up the bill to show him. Well, that was a knock-out.”
“What do you mean?” asked his interlocutor.
“Well, I'd have sworn on seven Bibles that I'd put 4s. on
that bill. But now I saw I'd put 14s., as plain as paint.”
“Well?” cried Valentin, moving slowly, but with burning
eyes, “and then?”
“The parson at the door he says all serene, “Sorry to
confuse your accounts, but it'll pay for the window. ' “What window?' I says.
“The one I'm going to break,' he says, and smashed that blessed pane with his
umbrella.”
All three inquirers made an exclamation; and the inspector
said under his breath, “Are we after escaped lunatics?” The waiter went on with
some relish for the ridiculous story:
“I was so knocked silly for a second, I couldn't do
anything. The man marched out of the place and joined his friend just round the
corner. Then they went so quick up Bullock Street that I couldn't catch them,
though I ran round the bars to do it.”
“Bullock Street,” said the detective, and shot up that
thoroughfare as quickly as the strange couple he pursued.
Their journey now took them through bare brick ways like
tunnels; streets with few lights and even with few windows; streets that seemed
built out of the blank backs of everything and everywhere. Dusk was deepening,
and it was not easy even for the London policemen to guess in what exact
direction they were treading. The inspector, however, was pretty certain that
they would eventually strike some part of Hampstead Heath. Abruptly one bulging
gas-lit window broke the blue twilight like a bull's-eye lantern; and Valentin
stopped an instant before a little garish sweetstuff shop. After an instant's
hesitation he went in; he stood amid the gaudy colours of the confectionery
with entire gravity and bought thirteen chocolate cigars with a certain care. He
was clearly preparing an opening; but he did not need one.
An angular, elderly young woman in the shop had regarded his
elegant appearance with a merely automatic inquiry; but when she saw the door
behind him blocked with the blue uniform of the inspector, her eyes seemed to
wake up.
“Oh,” she said, “if you've come about that parcel, I've sent
it off already.”
“Parcel?” repeated Valentin; and it was his turn to look
inquiring.
“I mean the parcel the gentleman left—the clergyman
gentleman.”
“For goodness' sake,” said Valentin, leaning forward with
his first real confession of eagerness, “for Heaven's sake tell us what
happened exactly.”
“Well,” said the woman a little doubtfully, “the clergymen
came in about half an hour ago and bought some peppermints and talked a bit,
and then went off towards the Heath. But a second after, one of them runs back
into the shop and says, “Have I left a parcel!' Well, I looked everywhere and
couldn't see one; so he says, “Never mind; but if it should turn up, please
post it to this address,' and he left me the address and a shilling for my
trouble. And sure enough, though I thought I'd looked everywhere, I found he'd
left a brown paper parcel, so I posted it to the place he said. I can't
remember the address now; it was somewhere in Westminster. But as the thing
seemed so important, I thought perhaps the police had come about it.”
“So they have,” said Valentin shortly. “Is Hampstead Heath
near here?”
“Straight on for fifteen minutes,” said the woman, “and
you'll come right out on the open.” Valentin sprang out of the shop and began
to run. The other detectives followed him at a reluctant trot.
The street they threaded was so narrow and shut in by
shadows that when they came out unexpectedly into the void common and vast sky
they were startled to find the evening still so light and clear. A perfect dome
of peacock-green sank into gold amid the blackening trees and the dark violet
distances. The glowing green tint was just deep enough to pick out in points of
crystal one or two stars. All that was left of the daylight lay in a golden
glitter across the edge of Hampstead and that popular hollow which is called
the Vale of Health. The holiday makers who roam this region had not wholly
dispersed; a few couples sat shapelessly on benches; and here and there a
distant girl still shrieked in one of the swings. The glory of heaven deepened
and darkened around the sublime vulgarity of man; and standing on the slope and
looking across the valley, Valentin beheld the thing which he sought.
Among the black and breaking groups in that distance was one
especially black which did not break—a group of two figures clerically clad. Though
they seemed as small as insects, Valentin could see that one of them was much
smaller than the other. Though the other had a student's stoop and an
inconspicuous manner, he could see that the man was well over six feet high. He
shut his teeth and went forward, whirling his stick impatiently. By the time he
had substantially diminished the distance and magnified the two black figures
as in a vast microscope, he had perceived something else; something which
startled him, and yet which he had somehow expected. Whoever was the tall
priest, there could be no doubt about the identity of the short one. It was his
friend of the Harwich train, the stumpy little cure of Essex whom he had warned
about his brown paper parcels.
Now, so far as this went, everything fitted in finally and
rationally enough. Valentin had learned by his inquiries that morning that a
Father Brown from Essex was bringing up a silver cross with sapphires, a relic
of considerable value, to show some of the foreign priests at the congress. This
undoubtedly was the “silver with blue stones”; and Father Brown undoubtedly was
the little greenhorn in the train. Now there was nothing wonderful about the
fact that what Valentin had found out Flambeau had also found out; Flambeau
found out everything. Also there was nothing wonderful in the fact that when
Flambeau heard of a sapphire cross he should try to steal it; that was the most
natural thing in all natural history. And most certainly there was nothing
wonderful about the fact that Flambeau should have it all his own way with such
a silly sheep as the man with the umbrella and the parcels. He was the sort of
man whom anybody could lead on a string to the North Pole; it was not
surprising that an actor like Flambeau, dressed as another priest, could lead
him to Hampstead Heath. So far the crime seemed clear enough; and while the
detective pitied the priest for his helplessness, he almost despised Flambeau
for condescending to so gullible a victim. But when Valentin thought of all
that had happened in between, of all that had led him to his triumph, he racked
his brains for the smallest rhyme or reason in it. What had the stealing of a
blue-and-silver cross from a priest from Essex to do with chucking soup at wall
paper? What had it to do with calling nuts oranges, or with paying for windows
first and breaking them afterwards? He had come to the end of his chase; yet
somehow he had missed the middle of it. When he failed (which was seldom), he
had usually grasped the clue, but nevertheless missed the criminal. Here he had
grasped the criminal, but still he could not grasp the clue.
The two figures that they followed were crawling like black
flies across the huge green contour of a hill. They were evidently sunk in
conversation, and perhaps did not notice where they were going; but they were
certainly going to the wilder and more silent heights of the Heath. As their
pursuers gained on them, the latter had to use the undignified attitudes of the
deer-stalker, to crouch behind clumps of trees and even to crawl prostrate in
deep grass. By these ungainly ingenuities the hunters even came close enough to
the quarry to hear the murmur of the discussion, but no word could be
distinguished except the word “reason” recurring frequently in a high and
almost childish voice. Once over an abrupt dip of land and a dense tangle of
thickets, the detectives actually lost the two figures they were following. They
did not find the trail again for an agonising ten minutes, and then it led
round the brow of a great dome of hill overlooking an amphitheatre of rich and
desolate sunset scenery. Under a tree in this commanding yet neglected spot was
an old ramshackle wooden seat. On this seat sat the two priests still in
serious speech together. The gorgeous green and gold still clung to the
darkening horizon; but the dome above was turning slowly from peacock-green to
peacock-blue, and the stars detached themselves more and more like solid
jewels. Mutely motioning to his followers, Valentin contrived to creep up
behind the big branching tree, and, standing there in deathly silence, heard
the words of the strange priests for the first time.
After he had listened for a minute and a half, he was
gripped by a devilish doubt. Perhaps he had dragged the two English policemen
to the wastes of a nocturnal heath on an errand no saner than seeking figs on
its thistles. For the two priests were talking exactly like priests, piously,
with learning and leisure, about the most aerial enigmas of theology. The
little Essex priest spoke the more simply, with his round face turned to the
strengthening stars; the other talked with his head bowed, as if he were not
even worthy to look at them. But no more innocently clerical conversation could
have been heard in any white Italian cloister or black Spanish cathedral.
The first he heard was the tail of one of Father Brown's
sentences, which ended: “...what they really meant in the Middle Ages by the
heavens being incorruptible.”
The taller priest nodded his bowed head and said:
“Ah, yes, these modern infidels appeal to their reason; but
who can look at those millions of worlds and not feel that there may well be
wonderful universes above us where reason is utterly unreasonable?”
“No,” said the other priest; “reason is always reasonable,
even in the last limbo, in the lost borderland of things. I know that people
charge the Church with lowering reason, but it is just the other way. Alone on
earth, the Church makes reason really supreme. Alone on earth, the Church
affirms that God himself is bound by reason.”
The other priest raised his austere face to the spangled sky
and said:
“Yet who knows if in that infinite universe—?”
“Only infinite physically,” said the little priest, turning
sharply in his seat, “not infinite in the sense of escaping from the laws of
truth.”
Valentin behind his tree was tearing his fingernails with
silent fury. He seemed almost to hear the sniggers of the English detectives
whom he had brought so far on a fantastic guess only to listen to the
metaphysical gossip of two mild old parsons. In his impatience he lost the
equally elaborate answer of the tall cleric, and when he listened again it was
again Father Brown who was speaking:
“Reason and justice grip the remotest and the loneliest
star. Look at those stars. Don't they look as if they were single diamonds and
sapphires? Well, you can imagine any mad botany or geology you please. Think of
forests of adamant with leaves of brilliants. Think the moon is a blue moon, a
single elephantine sapphire. But don't fancy that all that frantic astronomy
would make the smallest difference to the reason and justice of conduct. On
plains of opal, under cliffs cut out of pearl, you would still find a
notice-board, ‘Thou shalt not steal.’”
Valentin was just in the act of rising from his rigid and
crouching attitude and creeping away as softly as might be, felled by the one
great folly of his life. But something in the very silence of the tall priest
made him stop until the latter spoke. When at last he did speak, he said
simply, his head bowed and his hands on his knees:
“Well, I think that other worlds may perhaps rise higher
than our reason. The mystery of heaven is unfathomable, and I for one can only
bow my head.”
Then, with brow yet bent and without changing by the
faintest shade his attitude or voice, he added:
“Just hand over that sapphire cross of yours, will you? We're
all alone here, and I could pull you to pieces like a straw doll.”
The utterly unaltered voice and attitude added a strange
violence to that shocking change of speech. But the guarder of the relic only
seemed to turn his head by the smallest section of the compass. He seemed still
to have a somewhat foolish face turned to the stars. Perhaps he had not
understood. Or, perhaps, he had understood and sat rigid with terror.
“Yes,” said the tall priest, in the same low voice and in
the same still posture, “yes, I am Flambeau.”
Then, after a pause, he said:
“Come, will you give me that cross?”
“No,” said the other, and the monosyllable had an odd sound.
Flambeau suddenly flung off all his pontifical pretensions. The
great robber leaned back in his seat and laughed low but long.
“No,” he cried, “you won't give it me, you proud prelate. You
won't give it me, you little celibate simpleton. Shall I tell you why you won't
give it me? Because I've got it already in my own breast-pocket.”
The small man from Essex turned what seemed to be a dazed
face in the dusk, and said, with the timid eagerness of “The Private
Secretary”:
“Are—are you sure?”
Flambeau yelled with delight.
“Really, you're as good as a three-act farce,” he cried. “Yes,
you turnip, I am quite sure. I had the sense to make a duplicate of the right
parcel, and now, my friend, you've got the duplicate and I've got the jewels. An
old dodge, Father Brown—a very old dodge.”
“Yes,” said Father Brown, and passed his hand through his
hair with the same strange vagueness of manner. “Yes, I've heard of it before.”
The colossus of crime leaned over to the little rustic
priest with a sort of sudden interest.
“You have heard of it?” he asked. “Where have you heard of
it?”
“Well, I mustn't tell you his name, of course,” said the
little man simply. “He was a penitent, you know. He had lived prosperously for
about twenty years entirely on duplicate brown paper parcels. And so, you see,
when I began to suspect you, I thought of this poor chap's way of doing it at
once.”
“Began to suspect me?” repeated the outlaw with increased
intensity. “Did you really have the gumption to suspect me just because I
brought you up to this bare part of the heath?”
“No, no,” said Brown with an air of apology. “You see, I
suspected you when we first met. It's that little bulge up the sleeve where you
people have the spiked bracelet.”
“How in Tartarus,” cried Flambeau, “did you ever hear of the
spiked bracelet?”
“Oh, one's little flock, you know!” said Father Brown,
arching his eyebrows rather blankly. “When I was a curate in Hartlepool, there
were three of them with spiked bracelets. So, as I suspected you from the
first, don't you see, I made sure that the cross should go safe, anyhow. I'm
afraid I watched you, you know. So at last I saw you change the parcels. Then,
don't you see, I changed them back again. And then I left the right one
behind.”
“Left it behind?” repeated Flambeau, and for the first time
there was another note in his voice beside his triumph.
“Well, it was like this,” said the little priest, speaking
in the same unaffected way. “I went back to that sweet-shop and asked if I'd
left a parcel, and gave them a particular address if it turned up. Well, I knew
I hadn't; but when I went away again I did. So, instead of running after me
with that valuable parcel, they have sent it flying to a friend of mine in Westminster.”
Then he added rather sadly: “I learnt that, too, from a poor fellow in
Hartlepool. He used to do it with handbags he stole at railway stations, but
he's in a monastery now. Oh, one gets to know, you know,” he added, rubbing his
head again with the same sort of desperate apology. “We can't help being
priests. People come and tell us these things.”
Flambeau tore a brown-paper parcel out of his inner pocket
and rent it in pieces. There was nothing but paper and sticks of lead inside
it. He sprang to his feet with a gigantic gesture, and cried:
“I don't believe you. I don't believe a bumpkin like you
could manage all that. I believe you've still got the stuff on you, and if you
don't give it up—why, we're all alone, and I'll take it by force!”
“No,” said Father Brown simply, and stood up also, “you
won't take it by force. First, because I really haven't still got it. And,
second, because we are not alone.”
Flambeau stopped in his stride forward.
“Behind that tree,” said Father Brown, pointing, “are two
strong policemen and the greatest detective alive. How did they come here, do
you ask? Why, I brought them, of course! How did I do it? Why, I'll tell you if
you like! Lord bless you, we have to know twenty such things when we work among
the criminal classes! Well, I wasn't sure you were a thief, and it would never
do to make a scandal against one of our own clergy. So I just tested you to see
if anything would make you show yourself. A man generally makes a small scene
if he finds salt in his coffee; if he doesn't, he has some reason for keeping
quiet. I changed the salt and sugar, and you kept quiet. A man generally
objects if his bill is three times too big. If he pays it, he has some motive
for passing unnoticed. I altered your bill, and you paid it.”
The world seemed
waiting for Flambeau to leap like a tiger. But he was held back as by a spell;
he was stunned with the utmost curiosity.
“Well,” went on
Father Brown, with lumbering lucidity, “as you wouldn't leave any tracks for
the police, of course somebody had to. At every place we went to, I took care
to do something that would get us talked about for the rest of the day. I
didn't do much harm— a splashed wall, spilt apples, a broken window; but I
saved the cross, as the cross will always be saved. It is at Westminster by
now. I rather wonder you didn't stop it with the Donkey's Whistle.”
“With the what?”
asked Flambeau.
“I'm glad you've
never heard of it,” said the priest, making a face. “It's a foul thing. I'm
sure you're too good a man for a Whistler. I couldn't have countered it even
with the Spots myself; I'm not strong enough in the legs.”
“What on earth
are you talking about?” asked the other.
“Well, I did
think you'd know the Spots,” said Father Brown, agreeably surprised. “Oh, you
can't have gone so very wrong yet!”
“How in blazes do
you know all these horrors?” cried Flambeau.
The shadow of a
smile crossed the round, simple face of his clerical opponent.
“Oh, by being a
celibate simpleton, I suppose,” he said. “Has it never struck you that a man
who does next to nothing but hear men's real sins is not likely to be wholly
unaware of human evil? But, as a matter of fact, another part of my trade, too,
made me sure you weren't a priest.”
“What?” asked the
thief, almost gaping.
“You attacked
reason,” said Father Brown. “It's bad theology.”
And even as he
turned away to collect his property, the three policemen came out from under
the twilight trees. Flambeau was an artist and a sportsman. He stepped back and
swept Valentin a great bow.
“Do not bow to
me, mon ami,” said Valentin with silver clearness. “Let us both bow to our
master.”
And they both
stood an instant uncovered while the little Essex priest blinked about for his
umbrella.
The Secret Garden
Aristide
Valentin, Chief of the Paris Police, was late for his dinner, and some of his
guests began to arrive before him. These were, however, reassured by his
confidential servant, Ivan, the old man with a scar, and a face almost as grey
as his moustaches, who always sat at a table in the entrance hall—a hall hung
with weapons. Valentin's house was perhaps as peculiar and celebrated as its
master. It was an old house, with high walls and tall poplars almost
overhanging the Seine; but the oddity—and perhaps the police value—of its
architecture was this: that there was no ultimate exit at all except through
this front door, which was guarded by Ivan and the armoury. The garden was
large and elaborate, and there were many exits from the house into the garden.
But there was no exit from the garden into the world outside; all round it ran
a tall, smooth, unscalable wall with special spikes at the top; no bad garden,
perhaps, for a man to reflect in whom some hundred criminals had sworn to kill.
As Ivan explained
to the guests, their host had telephoned that he was detained for ten minutes.
He was, in truth, making some last arrangements about executions and such ugly
things; and though these duties were rootedly repulsive to him, he always
performed them with precision. Ruthless in the pursuit of criminals, he was
very mild about their punishment. Since he had been supreme over French—and
largely over European— policial methods, his great influence had been
honourably used for the mitigation of sentences and the purification of
prisons. He was one of the great humanitarian French freethinkers; and the only
thing wrong with them is that they make mercy even colder than justice.
When Valentin
arrived he was already dressed in black clothes and the red rosette—an elegant
figure, his dark beard already streaked with grey. He went straight through his
house to his study, which opened on the grounds behind. The garden door of it
was open, and after he had carefully locked his box in its official place, he
stood for a few seconds at the open door looking out upon the garden. A sharp
moon was fighting with the flying rags and tatters of a storm, and Valentin
regarded it with a wistfulness unusual in such scientific natures as his.
Perhaps such scientific natures have some psychic prevision of the most
tremendous problem of their lives. From any such occult mood, at least, he
quickly recovered, for he knew he was late, and that his guests had already
begun to arrive. A glance at his drawing-room when he entered it was enough to
make certain that his principal guest was not there, at any rate. He saw all
the other pillars of the little party; he saw Lord Galloway, the English
Ambassador—a choleric old man with a russet face like an apple, wearing the
blue ribbon of the Garter. He saw Lady Galloway, slim and threadlike, with
silver hair and a face sensitive and superior. He saw her daughter, Lady
Margaret Graham, a pale and pretty girl with an elfish face and copper-coloured
hair. He saw the Duchess of Mont St. Michel, black-eyed and opulent, and with
her her two daughters, black-eyed and opulent also. He saw Dr. Simon, a typical
French scientist, with glasses, a pointed brown beard, and a forehead barred
with those parallel wrinkles which are the penalty of superciliousness, since
they come through constantly elevating the eyebrows. He saw Father Brown, of
Cobhole, in Essex, whom he had recently met in England. He saw—perhaps with
more interest than any of these— a tall man in uniform, who had bowed to the
Galloways without receiving any very hearty acknowledgment, and who now
advanced alone to pay his respects to his host. This was Commandant O'Brien, of
the French Foreign Legion. He was a slim yet somewhat swaggering figure,
clean-shaven, dark-haired, and blue-eyed, and, as seemed natural in an officer
of that famous regiment of victorious failures and successful suicides, he had
an air at once dashing and melancholy. He was by birth an Irish gentleman, and
in boyhood had known the Galloways—especially Margaret Graham. He had left his
country after some crash of debts, and now expressed his complete freedom from
British etiquette by swinging about in uniform, sabre and spurs. When he bowed
to the Ambassador's family, Lord and Lady Galloway bent stiffly, and Lady
Margaret looked away.
But for whatever
old causes such people might be interested in each other, their distinguished
host was not specially interested in them. No one of them at least was in his
eyes the guest of the evening. Valentin was expecting, for special reasons, a
man of world-wide fame, whose friendship he had secured during some of his
great detective tours and triumphs in the United States. He was expecting
Julius K. Brayne, that multi-millionaire whose colossal and even crushing
endowments of small religions have occasioned so much easy sport and easier
solemnity for the American and English papers. Nobody could quite make out
whether Mr. Brayne was an atheist or a Mormon or a Christian Scientist; but he
was ready to pour money into any intellectual vessel, so long as it was an
untried vessel. One of his hobbies was to wait for the American Shakespeare— a
hobby more patient than angling. He admired Walt Whitman, but thought that Luke
P. Tanner, of Paris, Pa., was more “progressive” than Whitman any day. He liked
anything that he thought “progressive.” He thought Valentin “progressive,”
thereby doing him a grave injustice.
The solid
appearance of Julius K. Brayne in the room was as decisive as a dinner bell. He
had this great quality, which very few of us can claim, that his presence was
as big as his absence. He was a huge fellow, as fat as he was tall, clad in
complete evening black, without so much relief as a watch-chain or a ring. His
hair was white and well brushed back like a German's; his face was red, fierce
and cherubic, with one dark tuft under the lower lip that threw up that
otherwise infantile visage with an effect theatrical and even Mephistophelean.
Not long, however, did that salon merely stare at the celebrated American; his
lateness had already become a domestic problem, and he was sent with all speed
into the dining-room with Lady Galloway on his arm.
Except on one
point the Galloways were genial and casual enough. So long as Lady Margaret did
not take the arm of that adventurer O'Brien, her father was quite satisfied;
and she had not done so, she had decorously gone in with Dr. Simon.
Nevertheless, old Lord Galloway was restless and almost rude. He was diplomatic
enough during dinner, but when, over the cigars, three of the younger men—Simon
the doctor, Brown the priest, and the detrimental O'Brien, the exile in a
foreign uniform— all melted away to mix with the ladies or smoke in the
conservatory, then the English diplomatist grew very undiplomatic indeed. He
was stung every sixty seconds with the thought that the scamp O'Brien might be
signalling to Margaret somehow; he did not attempt to imagine how. He was left
over the coffee with Brayne, the hoary Yankee who believed in all religions,
and Valentin, the grizzled Frenchman who believed in none. They could argue
with each other, but neither could appeal to him. After a time this
“progressive” logomachy had reached a crisis of tedium; Lord Galloway got up
also and sought the drawing-room. He lost his way in long passages for some six
or eight minutes: till he heard the high-pitched, didactic voice of the doctor,
and then the dull voice of the priest, followed by general laughter. They also,
he thought with a curse, were probably arguing about “science and religion.”
But the instant he opened the salon door he saw only one thing— he saw what was
not there. He saw that Commandant O'Brien was absent, and that Lady Margaret
was absent too.
Rising
impatiently from the drawing-room, as he had from the dining-room, he stamped
along the passage once more. His notion of protecting his daughter from the
Irish-Algerian n'er-do-weel had become something central and even mad in his
mind. As he went towards the back of the house, where was Valentin's study, he
was surprised to meet his daughter, who swept past with a white, scornful face,
which was a second enigma. If she had been with O'Brien, where was O'Brien! If
she had not been with O'Brien, where had she been? With a sort of senile and
passionate suspicion he groped his way to the dark back parts of the mansion,
and eventually found a servants' entrance that opened on to the garden. The
moon with her scimitar had now ripped up and rolled away all the storm-wrack.
The argent light lit up all four corners of the garden. A tall figure in blue
was striding across the lawn towards the study door; a glint of moonlit silver
on his facings picked him out as Commandant O'Brien.
He vanished
through the French windows into the house, leaving Lord Galloway in an
indescribable temper, at once virulent and vague. The blue-and-silver garden,
like a scene in a theatre, seemed to taunt him with all that tyrannic
tenderness against which his worldly authority was at war. The length and grace
of the Irishman's stride enraged him as if he were a rival instead of a father;
the moonlight maddened him. He was trapped as if by magic into a garden of
troubadours, a Watteau fairyland; and, willing to shake off such amorous
imbecilities by speech, he stepped briskly after his enemy. As he did so he
tripped over some tree or stone in the grass; looked down at it first with
irritation and then a second time with curiosity. The next instant the moon and
the tall poplars looked at an unusual sight—an elderly English diplomatist
running hard and crying or bellowing as he ran.
His hoarse shouts
brought a pale face to the study door, the beaming glasses and worried brow of
Dr. Simon, who heard the nobleman's first clear words. Lord Galloway was
crying: “A corpse in the grass—a blood-stained corpse.” O'Brien at last had
gone utterly out of his mind.
“We must tell
Valentin at once,” said the doctor, when the other had brokenly described all
that he had dared to examine. “It is fortunate that he is here”; and even as he
spoke the great detective entered the study, attracted by the cry. It was
almost amusing to note his typical transformation; he had come with the common
concern of a host and a gentleman, fearing that some guest or servant was ill.
When he was told the gory fact, he turned with all his gravity instantly bright
and businesslike; for this, however abrupt and awful, was his business.
“Strange,
gentlemen,” he said as they hurried out into the garden, “that I should have
hunted mysteries all over the earth, and now one comes and settles in my own
back-yard. But where is the place?” They crossed the lawn less easily, as a
slight mist had begun to rise from the river; but under the guidance of the
shaken Galloway they found the body sunken in deep grass—the body of a very
tall and broad-shouldered man. He lay face downwards, so they could only see
that his big shoulders were clad in black cloth, and that his big head was
bald, except for a wisp or two of brown hair that clung to his skull like wet
seaweed. A scarlet serpent of blood crawled from under his fallen face.
“At least,” said
Simon, with a deep and singular intonation, “he is none of our party.”
“Examine him,
doctor,” cried Valentin rather sharply. “He may not be dead.”
The doctor bent
down. “He is not quite cold, but I am afraid he is dead enough,” he answered.
“Just help me to lift him up.”
They lifted him
carefully an inch from the ground, and all doubts as to his being really dead
were settled at once and frightfully. The head fell away. It had been entirely
sundered from the body; whoever had cut his throat had managed to sever the
neck as well. Even Valentin was slightly shocked. “He must have been as strong
as a gorilla,” he muttered.
Not without a
shiver, though he was used to anatomical abortions, Dr. Simon lifted the head.
It was slightly slashed about the neck and jaw, but the face was substantially
unhurt. It was a ponderous, yellow face, at once sunken and swollen, with a
hawk-like nose and heavy lids—a face of a wicked Roman emperor, with, perhaps,
a distant touch of a Chinese emperor. All present seemed to look at it with the
coldest eye of ignorance. Nothing else could be noted about the man except
that, as they had lifted his body, they had seen underneath it the white gleam
of a shirt-front defaced with a red gleam of blood. As Dr. Simon said, the man
had never been of their party. But he might very well have been trying to join
it, for he had come dressed for such an occasion.
Valentin went
down on his hands and knees and examined with his closest professional
attention the grass and ground for some twenty yards round the body, in which
he was assisted less skillfully by the doctor, and quite vaguely by the English
lord. Nothing rewarded their grovellings except a few twigs, snapped or chopped
into very small lengths, which Valentin lifted for an instant's examination and
then tossed away.
“Twigs,” he said
gravely; “twigs, and a total stranger with his head cut off; that is all there
is on this lawn.”
There was an
almost creepy stillness, and then the unnerved Galloway called out sharply:
“Who's that!
Who's that over there by the garden wall!”
A small figure
with a foolishly large head drew waveringly near them in the moonlit haze;
looked for an instant like a goblin, but turned out to be the harmless little
priest whom they had left in the drawing-room.
“I say,” he said
meekly, “there are no gates to this garden, do you know.”
Valentin's black
brows had come together somewhat crossly, as they did on principle at the sight
of the cassock. But he was far too just a man to deny the relevance of the
remark. “You are right,” he said. “Before we find out how he came to be killed,
we may have to find out how he came to be here. Now listen to me, gentlemen. If
it can be done without prejudice to my position and duty, we shall all agree
that certain distinguished names might well be kept out of this. There are
ladies, gentlemen, and there is a foreign ambassador. If we must mark it down
as a crime, then it must be followed up as a crime. But till then I can use my
own discretion. I am the head of the police; I am so public that I can afford
to be private. Please Heaven, I will clear everyone of my own guests before I
call in my men to look for anybody else. Gentlemen, upon your honour, you will
none of you leave the house till tomorrow at noon; there are bedrooms for all.
Simon, I think you know where to find my man, Ivan, in the front hall; he is a
confidential man. Tell him to leave another servant on guard and come to me at
once. Lord Galloway, you are certainly the best person to tell the ladies what
has happened, and prevent a panic. They also must stay. Father Brown and I will
remain with the body.”
When this spirit
of the captain spoke in Valentin he was obeyed like a bugle. Dr. Simon went
through to the armoury and routed out Ivan, the public detective's private
detective. Galloway went to the drawing-room and told the terrible news
tactfully enough, so that by the time the company assembled there the ladies
were already startled and already soothed. Meanwhile the good priest and the
good atheist stood at the head and foot of the dead man motionless in the
moonlight, like symbolic statues of their two philosophies of death.
Ivan, the
confidential man with the scar and the moustaches, came out of the house like a
cannon ball, and came racing across the lawn to Valentin like a dog to his master.
His livid face was quite lively with the glow of this domestic detective story,
and it was with almost unpleasant eagerness that he asked his master's
permission to examine the remains.
“Yes; look, if
you like, Ivan,” said Valentin, “but don't be long. We must go in and thrash
this out in the house.”
Ivan lifted the
head, and then almost let it drop.
“Why,” he gasped,
“it's—no, it isn't; it can't be. Do you know this man, sir?”
“No,” said
Valentin indifferently; “we had better go inside.”
Between them they
carried the corpse to a sofa in the study, and then all made their way to the
drawing-room.
The detective sat
down at a desk quietly, and even without hesitation; but his eye was the iron
eye of a judge at assize. He made a few rapid notes upon paper in front of him,
and then said shortly: “Is everybody here?”
“Not Mr. Brayne,”
said the Duchess of Mont St. Michel, looking round.
“No,” said Lord
Galloway in a hoarse, harsh voice. “And not Mr. Neil O'Brien, I fancy. I saw
that gentleman walking in the garden when the corpse was still warm.”
“Ivan,” said the
detective, “go and fetch Commandant O'Brien and Mr. Brayne. Mr. Brayne, I know,
is finishing a cigar in the dining-room; Commandant O'Brien, I think, is
walking up and down the conservatory. I am not sure.”
The faithful
attendant flashed from the room, and before anyone could stir or speak Valentin
went on with the same soldierly swiftness of exposition.
“Everyone here
knows that a dead man has been found in the garden, his head cut clean from his
body. Dr. Simon, you have examined it. Do you think that to cut a man's throat
like that would need great force? Or, perhaps, only a very sharp knife?”
“I should say
that it could not be done with a knife at all,” said the pale doctor.
“Have you any
thought,” resumed Valentin, “of a tool with which it could be done?”
“Speaking within
modern probabilities, I really haven't,” said the doctor, arching his painful
brows. “It's not easy to hack a neck through even clumsily, and this was a very
clean cut. It could be done with a battle-axe or an old headsman's axe, or an old
two-handed sword.”
“But, good
heavens!” cried the Duchess, almost in hysterics, “there aren't any two-handed
swords and battle-axes round here.”
Valentin was
still busy with the paper in front of him. “Tell me,” he said, still writing
rapidly, “could it have been done with a long French cavalry sabre?”
A low knocking
came at the door, which, for some unreasonable reason, curdled everyone's blood
like the knocking in Macbeth. Amid that frozen silence Dr. Simon managed to
say: “A sabre—yes, I suppose it could.”
“Thank you,” said
Valentin. “Come in, Ivan.”
The confidential
Ivan opened the door and ushered in Commandant Neil O'Brien, whom he had found
at last pacing the garden again.
The Irish officer
stood up disordered and defiant on the threshold. “What do you want with me?”
he cried.
“Please sit
down,” said Valentin in pleasant, level tones. “Why, you aren't wearing your
sword. Where is it?”
“I left it on the
library table,” said O'Brien, his brogue deepening in his disturbed mood. “It
was a nuisance, it was getting—”
“Ivan,” said
Valentin, “please go and get the Commandant's sword from the library.” Then, as
the servant vanished, “Lord Galloway says he saw you leaving the garden just
before he found the corpse. What were you doing in the garden?”
The Commandant
flung himself recklessly into a chair. “Oh,” he cried in pure Irish, “admirin'
the moon. Communing with Nature, me bhoy.”
A heavy silence
sank and endured, and at the end of it came again that trivial and terrible
knocking. Ivan reappeared, carrying an empty steel scabbard. “This is all I can
find,” he said.
“Put it on the
table,” said Valentin, without looking up.
There was an
inhuman silence in the room, like that sea of inhuman silence round the dock of
the condemned murderer. The Duchess's weak exclamations had long ago died away.
Lord Galloway's swollen hatred was satisfied and even sobered. The voice that
came was quite unexpected.
“I think I can
tell you,” cried Lady Margaret, in that clear, quivering voice with which a
courageous woman speaks publicly. “I can tell you what Mr. O'Brien was doing in
the garden, since he is bound to silence. He was asking me to marry him. I
refused; I said in my family circumstances I could give him nothing but my
respect. He was a little angry at that; he did not seem to think much of my
respect. I wonder,” she added, with rather a wan smile, “if he will care at all
for it now. For I offer it him now. I will swear anywhere that he never did a
thing like this.”
Lord Galloway had
edged up to his daughter, and was intimidating her in what he imagined to be an
undertone. “Hold your tongue, Maggie,” he said in a thunderous whisper. “Why
should you shield the fellow? Where's his sword? Where's his confounded
cavalry—”
He stopped
because of the singular stare with which his daughter was regarding him, a look
that was indeed a lurid magnet for the whole group.
“You old fool!”
she said in a low voice without pretence of piety, “what do you suppose you are
trying to prove? I tell you this man was innocent while with me. But if he
wasn't innocent, he was still with me. If he murdered a man in the garden, who
was it who must have seen—who must at least have known? Do you hate Neil so
much as to put your own daughter—”
Lady Galloway
screamed. Everyone else sat tingling at the touch of those satanic tragedies
that have been between lovers before now. They saw the proud, white face of the
Scotch aristocrat and her lover, the Irish adventurer, like old portraits in a
dark house. The long silence was full of formless historical memories of
murdered husbands and poisonous paramours.
In the centre of
this morbid silence an innocent voice said: “Was it a very long cigar?”
The change of
thought was so sharp that they had to look round to see who had spoken.
“I mean,” said
little Father Brown, from the corner of the room, “I mean that cigar Mr. Brayne
is finishing. It seems nearly as long as a walking-stick.”
Despite the
irrelevance there was assent as well as irritation in Valentin's face as he
lifted his head.
“Quite right,” he
remarked sharply. “Ivan, go and see about Mr. Brayne again, and bring him here
at once.”
The instant the
factotum had closed the door, Valentin addressed the girl with an entirely new
earnestness.
“Lady Margaret,”
he said, “we all feel, I am sure, both gratitude and admiration for your act in
rising above your lower dignity and explaining the Commandant's conduct. But
there is a hiatus still. Lord Galloway, I understand, met you passing from the
study to the drawing-room, and it was only some minutes afterwards that he found
the garden and the Commandant still walking there.”
“You have to
remember,” replied Margaret, with a faint irony in her voice, “that I had just
refused him, so we should scarcely have come back arm in arm. He is a
gentleman, anyhow; and he loitered behind— and so got charged with murder.”
“In those few
moments,” said Valentin gravely, “he might really—”
The knock came
again, and Ivan put in his scarred face.
“Beg pardon,
sir,” he said, “but Mr. Brayne has left the house.”
“Left!” cried
Valentin, and rose for the first time to his feet.
“Gone. Scooted.
Evaporated,” replied Ivan in humorous French. “His hat and coat are gone, too,
and I'll tell you something to cap it all. I ran outside the house to find any
traces of him, and I found one, and a big trace, too.”
“What do you
mean?” asked Valentin.
“I'll show you,”
said his servant, and reappeared with a flashing naked cavalry sabre, streaked
with blood about the point and edge. Everyone in the room eyed it as if it were
a thunderbolt; but the experienced Ivan went on quite quietly:
“I found this,”
he said, “flung among the bushes fifty yards up the road to Paris. In other
words, I found it just where your respectable Mr. Brayne threw it when he ran
away.”
There was again a
silence, but of a new sort. Valentin took the sabre, examined it, reflected
with unaffected concentration of thought, and then turned a respectful face to
O'Brien. “Commandant,” he said, “we trust you will always produce this weapon
if it is wanted for police examination. Meanwhile,” he added, slapping the
steel back in the ringing scabbard, “let me return you your sword.”
At the military
symbolism of the action the audience could hardly refrain from applause.
For Neil O'Brien,
indeed, that gesture was the turning-point of existence. By the time he was
wandering in the mysterious garden again in the colours of the morning the
tragic futility of his ordinary mien had fallen from him; he was a man with
many reasons for happiness. Lord Galloway was a gentleman, and had offered him
an apology. Lady Margaret was something better than a lady, a woman at least,
and had perhaps given him something better than an apology, as they drifted
among the old flowerbeds before breakfast. The whole company was more
lighthearted and humane, for though the riddle of the death remained, the load
of suspicion was lifted off them all, and sent flying off to Paris with the
strange millionaire— a man they hardly knew. The devil was cast out of the
house— he had cast himself out.
Still, the riddle
remained; and when O'Brien threw himself on a garden seat beside Dr. Simon,
that keenly scientific person at once resumed it. He did not get much talk out
of O'Brien, whose thoughts were on pleasanter things.
“I can't say it
interests me much,” said the Irishman frankly, “especially as it seems pretty
plain now. Apparently Brayne hated this stranger for some reason; lured him
into the garden, and killed him with my sword. Then he fled to the city,
tossing the sword away as he went. By the way, Ivan tells me the dead man had a
Yankee dollar in his pocket. So he was a countryman of Brayne's, and that seems
to clinch it. I don't see any difficulties about the business.”
“There are five
colossal difficulties,” said the doctor quietly; “like high walls within walls.
Don't mistake me. I don't doubt that Brayne did it; his flight, I fancy, proves
that. But as to how he did it. First difficulty: Why should a man kill another
man with a great hulking sabre, when he can almost kill him with a pocket knife
and put it back in his pocket? Second difficulty: Why was there no noise or
outcry? Does a man commonly see another come up waving a scimitar and offer no
remarks? Third difficulty: A servant watched the front door all the evening;
and a rat cannot get into Valentin's garden anywhere. How did the dead man get
into the garden? Fourth difficulty: Given the same conditions, how did Brayne
get out of the garden?”
“And the fifth,”
said Neil, with eyes fixed on the English priest who was coming slowly up the
path.
“Is a trifle, I
suppose,” said the doctor, “but I think an odd one. When I first saw how the
head had been slashed, I supposed the assassin had struck more than once. But
on examination I found many cuts across the truncated section; in other words,
they were struck after the head was off. Did Brayne hate his foe so fiendishly
that he stood sabring his body in the moonlight?”
“Horrible!” said
O'Brien, and shuddered.
The little
priest, Brown, had arrived while they were talking, and had waited, with
characteristic shyness, till they had finished. Then he said awkwardly:
“I say, I'm sorry
to interrupt. But I was sent to tell you the news!”
“News?” repeated
Simon, and stared at him rather painfully through his glasses.
“Yes, I'm sorry,”
said Father Brown mildly. “There's been another murder, you know.”
Both men on the
seat sprang up, leaving it rocking.
“And, what's
stranger still,” continued the priest, with his dull eye on the rhododendrons,
“it's the same disgusting sort; it's another beheading. They found the second
head actually bleeding into the river, a few yards along Brayne's road to
Paris; so they suppose that he—”
“Great Heaven!”
cried O'Brien. “Is Brayne a monomaniac?”
“There are
American vendettas,” said the priest impassively. Then he added: “They want you
to come to the library and see it.”
Commandant
O'Brien followed the others towards the inquest, feeling decidedly sick. As a
soldier, he loathed all this secretive carnage; where were these extravagant
amputations going to stop? First one head was hacked off, and then another; in
this case (he told himself bitterly) it was not true that two heads were better
than one. As he crossed the study he almost staggered at a shocking
coincidence. Upon Valentin's table lay the coloured picture of yet a third bleeding
head; and it was the head of Valentin himself. A second glance showed him it
was only a Nationalist paper, called The Guillotine, which every week showed
one of its political opponents with rolling eyes and writhing features just
after execution; for Valentin was an anti-clerical of some note. But O'Brien
was an Irishman, with a kind of chastity even in his sins; and his gorge rose
against that great brutality of the intellect which belongs only to France. He
felt Paris as a whole, from the grotesques on the Gothic churches to the gross
caricatures in the newspapers. He remembered the gigantic jests of the
Revolution. He saw the whole city as one ugly energy, from the sanguinary
sketch lying on Valentin's table up to where, above a mountain and forest of
gargoyles, the great devil grins on Notre Dame.
The library was
long, low, and dark; what light entered it shot from under low blinds and had
still some of the ruddy tinge of morning. Valentin and his servant Ivan were
waiting for them at the upper end of a long, slightly-sloping desk, on which
lay the mortal remains, looking enormous in the twilight. The big black figure
and yellow face of the man found in the garden confronted them essentially
unchanged. The second head, which had been fished from among the river reeds
that morning, lay streaming and dripping beside it; Valentin's men were still
seeking to recover the rest of this second corpse, which was supposed to be
afloat. Father Brown, who did not seem to share O'Brien's sensibilities in the
least, went up to the second head and examined it with his blinking care. It
was little more than a mop of wet white hair, fringed with silver fire in the
red and level morning light; the face, which seemed of an ugly, empurpled and
perhaps criminal type, had been much battered against trees or stones as it
tossed in the water.
“Good morning,
Commandant O'Brien,” said Valentin, with quiet cordiality. “You have heard of
Brayne's last experiment in butchery, I suppose?”
Father Brown was
still bending over the head with white hair, and he said, without looking up:
“I suppose it is
quite certain that Brayne cut off this head, too.”
“Well, it seems
common sense,” said Valentin, with his hands in his pockets. “Killed in the
same way as the other. Found within a few yards of the other. And sliced by the
same weapon which we know he carried away.”
“Yes, yes; I
know,” replied Father Brown submissively. “Yet, you know, I doubt whether
Brayne could have cut off this head.”
“Why not?”
inquired Dr. Simon, with a rational stare.
“Well, doctor,”
said the priest, looking up blinking, “can a man cut off his own head? I don't
know.”
O'Brien felt an
insane universe crashing about his ears; but the doctor sprang forward with
impetuous practicality and pushed back the wet white hair.
“Oh, there's no
doubt it's Brayne,” said the priest quietly. “He had exactly that chip in the
left ear.”
The detective, who
had been regarding the priest with steady and glittering eyes, opened his
clenched mouth and said sharply: “You seem to know a lot about him, Father
Brown.”
“I do,” said the
little man simply. “I've been about with him for some weeks. He was thinking of
joining our church.”
The star of the
fanatic sprang into Valentin's eyes; he strode towards the priest with clenched
hands. “And, perhaps,” he cried, with a blasting sneer, “perhaps he was also
thinking of leaving all his money to your church.”
“Perhaps he was,”
said Brown stolidly; “it is possible.”
“In that case,”
cried Valentin, with a dreadful smile, “you may indeed know a great deal about
him. About his life and about his—”
Commandant
O'Brien laid a hand on Valentin's arm. “Drop that slanderous rubbish,
Valentin,” he said, “or there may be more swords yet.”
But Valentin
(under the steady, humble gaze of the priest) had already recovered himself.
“Well,” he said shortly, “people's private opinions can wait. You gentlemen are
still bound by your promise to stay; you must enforce it on yourselves— and on
each other. Ivan here will tell you anything more you want to know; I must get
to business and write to the authorities. We can't keep this quiet any longer.
I shall be writing in my study if there is any more news.”
“Is there any
more news, Ivan?” asked Dr. Simon, as the chief of police strode out of the
room.
“Only one more
thing, I think, sir,” said Ivan, wrinkling up his grey old face, “but that's
important, too, in its way. There's that old buffer you found on the lawn,” and
he pointed without pretence of reverence at the big black body with the yellow
head. “We've found out who he is, anyhow.”
“Indeed!” cried
the astonished doctor, “and who is he?”
“His name was
Arnold Becker,” said the under-detective, “though he went by many aliases. He
was a wandering sort of scamp, and is known to have been in America; so that
was where Brayne got his knife into him. We didn't have much to do with him
ourselves, for he worked mostly in Germany. We've communicated, of course, with
the German police. But, oddly enough, there was a twin brother of his, named
Louis Becker, whom we had a great deal to do with. In fact, we found it
necessary to guillotine him only yesterday. Well, it's a rum thing, gentlemen,
but when I saw that fellow flat on the lawn I had the greatest jump of my life.
If I hadn't seen Louis Becker guillotined with my own eyes, I'd have sworn it
was Louis Becker lying there in the grass. Then, of course, I remembered his
twin brother in Germany, and following up the clue—”
The explanatory
Ivan stopped, for the excellent reason that nobody was listening to him. The
Commandant and the doctor were both staring at Father Brown, who had sprung
stiffly to his feet, and was holding his temples tight like a man in sudden and
violent pain.
“Stop, stop,
stop!” he cried; “stop talking a minute, for I see half. Will God give me
strength? Will my brain make the one jump and see all? Heaven help me! I used
to be fairly good at thinking. I could paraphrase any page in Aquinas once.
Will my head split—or will it see? I see half—I only see half.”
He buried his
head in his hands, and stood in a sort of rigid torture of thought or prayer,
while the other three could only go on staring at this last prodigy of their
wild twelve hours.
When Father
Brown's hands fell they showed a face quite fresh and serious, like a child's.
He heaved a huge sigh, and said: “Let us get this said and done with as quickly
as possible. Look here, this will be the quickest way to convince you all of the
truth.” He turned to the doctor. “Dr. Simon,” he said, “you have a strong
head-piece, and I heard you this morning asking the five hardest questions
about this business. Well, if you will ask them again, I will answer them.”
Simon's pince-nez
dropped from his nose in his doubt and wonder, but he answered at once. “Well,
the first question, you know, is why a man should kill another with a clumsy
sabre at all when a man can kill with a bodkin?”
“A man cannot
behead with a bodkin,” said Brown calmly, “and for this murder beheading was
absolutely necessary.”
“Why?” asked
O'Brien, with interest.
“And the next
question?” asked Father Brown.
“Well, why didn't
the man cry out or anything?” asked the doctor; “sabres in gardens are
certainly unusual.”
“Twigs,” said the
priest gloomily, and turned to the window which looked on the scene of death.
“No one saw the point of the twigs. Why should they lie on that lawn (look at
it) so far from any tree? They were not snapped off; they were chopped off. The
murderer occupied his enemy with some tricks with the sabre, showing how he
could cut a branch in mid-air, or what-not. Then, while his enemy bent down to
see the result, a silent slash, and the head fell.”
“Well,” said the
doctor slowly, “that seems plausible enough. But my next two questions will
stump anyone.”
The priest still
stood looking critically out of the window and waited.
“You know how all
the garden was sealed up like an air-tight chamber,” went on the doctor. “Well,
how did the strange man get into the garden?”
Without turning
round, the little priest answered: “There never was any strange man in the
garden.”
There was a silence,
and then a sudden cackle of almost childish laughter relieved the strain. The
absurdity of Brown's remark moved Ivan to open taunts.
“Oh!” he cried;
“then we didn't lug a great fat corpse on to a sofa last night? He hadn't got
into the garden, I suppose?”
“Got into the
garden?” repeated Brown reflectively. “No, not entirely.”
“Hang it all,”
cried Simon, “a man gets into a garden, or he doesn't.”
“Not
necessarily,” said the priest, with a faint smile. “What is the nest question,
doctor?”
“I fancy you're
ill,” exclaimed Dr. Simon sharply; “but I'll ask the next question if you like.
How did Brayne get out of the garden?”
“He didn't get
out of the garden,” said the priest, still looking out of the window.
“Didn't get out
of the garden?” exploded Simon.
“Not completely,”
said Father Brown.
Simon shook his
fists in a frenzy of French logic. “A man gets out of a garden, or he doesn't,”
he cried.
“Not always,”
said Father Brown.
Dr. Simon sprang
to his feet impatiently. “I have no time to spare on such senseless talk,” he
cried angrily. “If you can't understand a man being on one side of a wall or
the other, I won't trouble you further.”
“Doctor,” said
the cleric very gently, “we have always got on very pleasantly together. If
only for the sake of old friendship, stop and tell me your fifth question.”
The impatient
Simon sank into a chair by the door and said briefly: “The head and shoulders
were cut about in a queer way. It seemed to be done after death.”
“Yes,” said the
motionless priest, “it was done so as to make you assume exactly the one simple
falsehood that you did assume. It was done to make you take for granted that
the head belonged to the body.”
The borderland of
the brain, where all the monsters are made, moved horribly in the Gaelic
O'Brien. He felt the chaotic presence of all the horse-men and fish-women that
man's unnatural fancy has begotten. A voice older than his first fathers seemed
saying in his ear: “Keep out of the monstrous garden where grows the tree with
double fruit. Avoid the evil garden where died the man with two heads.” Yet,
while these shameful symbolic shapes passed across the ancient mirror of his
Irish soul, his Frenchified intellect was quite alert, and was watching the odd
priest as closely and incredulously as all the rest.
Father Brown had
turned round at last, and stood against the window, with his face in dense
shadow; but even in that shadow they could see it was pale as ashes.
Nevertheless, he spoke quite sensibly, as if there were no Gaelic souls on
earth.
“Gentlemen,” he
said, “you did not find the strange body of Becker in the garden. You did not
find any strange body in the garden. In face of Dr. Simon's rationalism, I
still affirm that Becker was only partly present. Look here!” (pointing to the
black bulk of the mysterious corpse) “you never saw that man in your lives. Did
you ever see this man?”
He rapidly rolled
away the bald, yellow head of the unknown, and put in its place the white-maned
head beside it. And there, complete, unified, unmistakable, lay Julius K. Brayne.
“The murderer,”
went on Brown quietly, “hacked off his enemy's head and flung the sword far
over the wall. But he was too clever to fling the sword only. He flung the head
over the wall also. Then he had only to clap on another head to the corpse, and
(as he insisted on a private inquest) you all imagined a totally new man.”
“Clap on another
head!” said O'Brien staring. “What other head? Heads don't grow on garden
bushes, do they?”
“No,” said Father
Brown huskily, and looking at his boots; “there is only one place where they
grow. They grow in the basket of the guillotine, beside which the chief of
police, Aristide Valentin, was standing not an hour before the murder. Oh, my
friends, hear me a minute more before you tear me in pieces. Valentin is an honest
man, if being mad for an arguable cause is honesty. But did you never see in
that cold, grey eye of his that he is mad! He would do anything, anything, to
break what he calls the superstition of the Cross. He has fought for it and
starved for it, and now he has murdered for it. Brayne's crazy millions had
hitherto been scattered among so many sects that they did little to alter the
balance of things. But Valentin heard a whisper that Brayne, like so many
scatter-brained sceptics, was drifting to us; and that was quite a different
thing. Brayne would pour supplies into the impoverished and pugnacious Church
of France; he would support six Nationalist newspapers like The Guillotine. The
battle was already balanced on a point, and the fanatic took flame at the risk.
He resolved to destroy the millionaire, and he did it as one would expect the
greatest of detectives to commit his only crime. He abstracted the severed head
of Becker on some criminological excuse, and took it home in his official box.
He had that last argument with Brayne, that Lord Galloway did not hear the end
of; that failing, he led him out into the sealed garden, talked about
swordsmanship, used twigs and a sabre for illustration, and—”
Ivan of the Scar
sprang up. “You lunatic,” he yelled; “you'll go to my master now, if I take you
by—”
“Why, I was going
there,” said Brown heavily; “I must ask him to confess, and all that.”
Driving the
unhappy Brown before them like a hostage or sacrifice, they rushed together
into the sudden stillness of Valentin's study.
The great
detective sat at his desk apparently too occupied to hear their turbulent
entrance. They paused a moment, and then something in the look of that upright
and elegant back made the doctor run forward suddenly. A touch and a glance
showed him that there was a small box of pills at Valentin's elbow, and that
Valentin was dead in his chair; and on the blind face of the suicide was more
than the pride of Cato.
The Queer Feet
If you meet a
member of that select club, “The Twelve True Fishermen,” entering the Vernon
Hotel for the annual club dinner, you will observe, as he takes off his
overcoat, that his evening coat is green and not black. If (supposing that you
have the star-defying audacity to address such a being) you ask him why, he
will probably answer that he does it to avoid being mistaken for a waiter. You
will then retire crushed. But you will leave behind you a mystery as yet
unsolved and a tale worth telling.
If (to pursue the
same vein of improbable conjecture) you were to meet a mild, hard-working
little priest, named Father Brown, and were to ask him what he thought was the
most singular luck of his life, he would probably reply that upon the whole his
best stroke was at the Vernon Hotel, where he had averted a crime and, perhaps,
saved a soul, merely by listening to a few footsteps in a passage. He is
perhaps a little proud of this wild and wonderful guess of his, and it is
possible that he might refer to it. But since it is immeasurably unlikely that
you will ever rise high enough in the social world to find “The Twelve True
Fishermen,” or that you will ever sink low enough among slums and criminals to
find Father Brown, I fear you will never hear the story at all unless you hear
it from me.
The Vernon Hotel
at which The Twelve True Fishermen held their annual dinners was an institution
such as can only exist in an oligarchical society which has almost gone mad on
good manners. It was that topsy-turvy product—an “exclusive” commercial
enterprise. That is, it was a thing which paid not by attracting people, but
actually by turning people away. In the heart of a plutocracy tradesmen become
cunning enough to be more fastidious than their customers. They positively create
difficulties so that their wealthy and weary clients may spend money and
diplomacy in overcoming them. If there were a fashionable hotel in London which
no man could enter who was under six foot, society would meekly make up parties
of six-foot men to dine in it. If there were an expensive restaurant which by a
mere caprice of its proprietor was only open on Thursday afternoon, it would be
crowded on Thursday afternoon. The Vernon Hotel stood, as if by accident, in
the corner of a square in Belgravia. It was a small hotel; and a very
inconvenient one. But its very inconveniences were considered as walls
protecting a particular class. One inconvenience, in particular, was held to be
of vital importance: the fact that practically only twenty-four people could
dine in the place at once. The only big dinner table was the celebrated terrace
table, which stood open to the air on a sort of veranda overlooking one of the
most exquisite old gardens in London. Thus it happened that even the
twenty-four seats at this table could only be enjoyed in warm weather; and this
making the enjoyment yet more difficult made it yet more desired. The existing
owner of the hotel was a Jew named Lever; and he made nearly a million out of
it, by making it difficult to get into. Of course he combined with this
limitation in the scope of his enterprise the most careful polish in its
performance. The wines and cooking were really as good as any in Europe, and
the demeanour of the attendants exactly mirrored the fixed mood of the English upper
class. The proprietor knew all his waiters like the fingers on his hand; there
were only fifteen of them all told. It was much easier to become a Member of
Parliament than to become a waiter in that hotel. Each waiter was trained in
terrible silence and smoothness, as if he were a gentleman's servant. And,
indeed, there was generally at least one waiter to every gentleman who dined.
The club of The
Twelve True Fishermen would not have consented to dine anywhere but in such a
place, for it insisted on a luxurious privacy; and would have been quite upset
by the mere thought that any other club was even dining in the same building.
On the occasion of their annual dinner the Fishermen were in the habit of
exposing all their treasures, as if they were in a private house, especially
the celebrated set of fish knives and forks which were, as it were, the
insignia of the society, each being exquisitely wrought in silver in the form
of a fish, and each loaded at the hilt with one large pearl. These were always
laid out for the fish course, and the fish course was always the most
magnificent in that magnificent repast. The society had a vast number of
ceremonies and observances, but it had no history and no object; that was where
it was so very aristocratic. You did not have to be anything in order to be one
of the Twelve Fishers; unless you were already a certain sort of person, you
never even heard of them. It had been in existence twelve years. Its president
was Mr. Audley. Its vice-president was the Duke of Chester.
If I have in any
degree conveyed the atmosphere of this appalling hotel, the reader may feel a
natural wonder as to how I came to know anything about it, and may even
speculate as to how so ordinary a person as my friend Father Brown came to find
himself in that golden galley. As far as that is concerned, my story is simple,
or even vulgar. There is in the world a very aged rioter and demagogue who
breaks into the most refined retreats with the dreadful information that all
men are brothers, and wherever this leveller went on his pale horse it was
Father Brown's trade to follow. One of the waiters, an Italian, had been struck
down with a paralytic stroke that afternoon; and his Jewish employer,
marvelling mildly at such superstitions, had consented to send for the nearest
Popish priest. With what the waiter confessed to Father Brown we are not
concerned, for the excellent reason that that cleric kept it to himself; but
apparently it involved him in writing out a note or statement for the conveying
of some message or the righting of some wrong. Father Brown, therefore, with a
meek impudence which he would have shown equally in Buckingham Palace, asked to
be provided with a room and writing materials. Mr. Lever was torn in two. He
was a kind man, and had also that bad imitation of kindness, the dislike of any
difficulty or scene. At the same time the presence of one unusual stranger in
his hotel that evening was like a speck of dirt on something just cleaned.
There was never any borderland or anteroom in the Vernon Hotel, no people
waiting in the hall, no customers coming in on chance. There were fifteen
waiters. There were twelve guests. It would be as startling to find a new guest
in the hotel that night as to find a new brother taking breakfast or tea in one's
own family. Moreover, the priest's appearance was second-rate and his clothes
muddy; a mere glimpse of him afar off might precipitate a crisis in the club.
Mr. Lever at last hit on a plan to cover, since he might not obliterate, the
disgrace. When you enter (as you never will) the Vernon Hotel, you pass down a
short passage decorated with a few dingy but important pictures, and come to
the main vestibule and lounge which opens on your right into passages leading
to the public rooms, and on your left to a similar passage pointing to the
kitchens and offices of the hotel. Immediately on your left hand is the corner
of a glass office, which abuts upon the lounge—a house within a house, so to
speak, like the old hotel bar which probably once occupied its place.
In this office
sat the representative of the proprietor (nobody in this place ever appeared in
person if he could help it), and just beyond the office, on the way to the
servants' quarters, was the gentlemen's cloak room, the last boundary of the gentlemen's
domain. But between the office and the cloak room was a small private room
without other outlet, sometimes used by the proprietor for delicate and
important matters, such as lending a duke a thousand pounds or declining to
lend him sixpence. It is a mark of the magnificent tolerance of Mr. Lever that
he permitted this holy place to be for about half an hour profaned by a mere
priest, scribbling away on a piece of paper. The story which Father Brown was
writing down was very likely a much better story than this one, only it will
never be known. I can merely state that it was very nearly as long, and that
the last two or three paragraphs of it were the least exciting and absorbing.
For it was by the
time that he had reached these that the priest began a little to allow his
thoughts to wander and his animal senses, which were commonly keen, to awaken.
The time of darkness and dinner was drawing on; his own forgotten little room
was without a light, and perhaps the gathering gloom, as occasionally happens,
sharpened the sense of sound. As Father Brown wrote the last and least
essential part of his document, he caught himself writing to the rhythm of a
recurrent noise outside, just as one sometimes thinks to the tune of a railway
train. When he became conscious of the thing he found what it was: only the
ordinary patter of feet passing the door, which in an hotel was no very
unlikely matter. Nevertheless, he stared at the darkened ceiling, and listened
to the sound. After he had listened for a few seconds dreamily, he got to his
feet and listened intently, with his head a little on one side. Then he sat
down again and buried his brow in his hands, now not merely listening, but
listening and thinking also.
The footsteps
outside at any given moment were such as one might hear in any hotel; and yet,
taken as a whole, there was something very strange about them. There were no
other footsteps. It was always a very silent house, for the few familiar guests
went at once to their own apartments, and the well-trained waiters were told to
be almost invisible until they were wanted. One could not conceive any place
where there was less reason to apprehend anything irregular. But these
footsteps were so odd that one could not decide to call them regular or
irregular. Father Brown followed them with his finger on the edge of the table,
like a man trying to learn a tune on the piano.
First, there came
a long rush of rapid little steps, such as a light man might make in winning a
walking race. At a certain point they stopped and changed to a sort of slow,
swinging stamp, numbering not a quarter of the steps, but occupying about the
same time. The moment the last echoing stamp had died away would come again the
run or ripple of light, hurrying feet, and then again the thud of the heavier
walking. It was certainly the same pair of boots, partly because (as has been
said) there were no other boots about, and partly because they had a small but
unmistakable creak in them. Father Brown had the kind of head that cannot help
asking questions; and on this apparently trivial question his head almost
split. He had seen men run in order to jump. He had seen men run in order to
slide. But why on earth should a man run in order to walk? Or, again, why
should he walk in order to run? Yet no other description would cover the antics
of this invisible pair of legs. The man was either walking very fast down
one-half of the corridor in order to walk very slow down the other half; or he
was walking very slow at one end to have the rapture of walking fast at the
other. Neither suggestion seemed to make much sense. His brain was growing
darker and darker, like his room.
Yet, as he began
to think steadily, the very blackness of his cell seemed to make his thoughts
more vivid; he began to see as in a kind of vision the fantastic feet capering
along the corridor in unnatural or symbolic attitudes. Was it a heathen
religious dance? Or some entirely new kind of scientific exercise? Father Brown
began to ask himself with more exactness what the steps suggested. Taking the
slow step first: it certainly was not the step of the proprietor. Men of his
type walk with a rapid waddle, or they sit still. It could not be any servant
or messenger waiting for directions. It did not sound like it. The poorer
orders (in an oligarchy) sometimes lurch about when they are slightly drunk,
but generally, and especially in such gorgeous scenes, they stand or sit in
constrained attitudes. No; that heavy yet springy step, with a kind of careless
emphasis, not specially noisy, yet not caring what noise it made, belonged to
only one of the animals of this earth. It was a gentleman of western Europe,
and probably one who had never worked for his living.
Just as he came
to this solid certainty, the step changed to the quicker one, and ran past the
door as feverishly as a rat. The listener remarked that though this step was
much swifter it was also much more noiseless, almost as if the man were walking
on tiptoe. Yet it was not associated in his mind with secrecy, but with
something else—something that he could not remember. He was maddened by one of
those half-memories that make a man feel half-witted. Surely he had heard that
strange, swift walking somewhere. Suddenly he sprang to his feet with a new
idea in his head, and walked to the door. His room had no direct outlet on the
passage, but let on one side into the glass office, and on the other into the
cloak room beyond. He tried the door into the office, and found it locked. Then
he looked at the window, now a square pane full of purple cloud cleft by livid
sunset, and for an instant he smelt evil as a dog smells rats.
The rational part
of him (whether the wiser or not) regained its supremacy. He remembered that
the proprietor had told him that he should lock the door, and would come later
to release him. He told himself that twenty things he had not thought of might
explain the eccentric sounds outside; he reminded himself that there was just
enough light left to finish his own proper work. Bringing his paper to the
window so as to catch the last stormy evening light, he resolutely plunged once
more into the almost completed record. He had written for about twenty minutes,
bending closer and closer to his paper in the lessening light; then suddenly he
sat upright. He had heard the strange feet once more.
This time they
had a third oddity. Previously the unknown man had walked, with levity indeed
and lightning quickness, but he had walked. This time he ran. One could hear
the swift, soft, bounding steps coming along the corridor, like the pads of a
fleeing and leaping panther. Whoever was coming was a very strong, active man,
in still yet tearing excitement. Yet, when the sound had swept up to the office
like a sort of whispering whirlwind, it suddenly changed again to the old slow,
swaggering stamp.
Father Brown
flung down his paper, and, knowing the office door to be locked, went at once
into the cloak room on the other side. The attendant of this place was
temporarily absent, probably because the only guests were at dinner and his
office was a sinecure. After groping through a grey forest of overcoats, he
found that the dim cloak room opened on the lighted corridor in the form of a
sort of counter or half-door, like most of the counters across which we have
all handed umbrellas and received tickets. There was a light immediately above
the semicircular arch of this opening. It threw little illumination on Father
Brown himself, who seemed a mere dark outline against the dim sunset window
behind him. But it threw an almost theatrical light on the man who stood
outside the cloak room in the corridor.
He was an elegant
man in very plain evening dress; tall, but with an air of not taking up much
room; one felt that he could have slid along like a shadow where many smaller
men would have been obvious and obstructive. His face, now flung back in the
lamplight, was swarthy and vivacious, the face of a foreigner. His figure was
good, his manners good humoured and confident; a critic could only say that his
black coat was a shade below his figure and manners, and even bulged and bagged
in an odd way. The moment he caught sight of Brown's black silhouette against
the sunset, he tossed down a scrap of paper with a number and called out with
amiable authority: “I want my hat and coat, please; I find I have to go away at
once.”
Father Brown took
the paper without a word, and obediently went to look for the coat; it was not
the first menial work he had done in his life. He brought it and laid it on the
counter; meanwhile, the strange gentleman who had been feeling in his waistcoat
pocket, said laughing: “I haven't got any silver; you can keep this.” And he
threw down half a sovereign, and caught up his coat.
Father Brown's
figure remained quite dark and still; but in that instant he had lost his head.
His head was always most valuable when he had lost it. In such moments he put
two and two together and made four million. Often the Catholic Church (which is
wedded to common sense) did not approve of it. Often he did not approve of it
himself. But it was real inspiration—important at rare crises—when whosoever
shall lose his head the same shall save it.
“I think, sir,”
he said civilly, “that you have some silver in your pocket.”
The tall
gentleman stared. “Hang it,” he cried, “if I choose to give you gold, why should
you complain?”
“Because silver
is sometimes more valuable than gold,” said the priest mildly; “that is, in
large quantities.”
The stranger
looked at him curiously. Then he looked still more curiously up the passage
towards the main entrance. Then he looked back at Brown again, and then he
looked very carefully at the window beyond Brown's head, still coloured with
the after-glow of the storm. Then he seemed to make up his mind. He put one
hand on the counter, vaulted over as easily as an acrobat and towered above the
priest, putting one tremendous hand upon his collar.
“Stand still,” he
said, in a hacking whisper. “I don't want to threaten you, but—”
“I do want to
threaten you,” said Father Brown, in a voice like a rolling drum, “I want to
threaten you with the worm that dieth not, and the fire that is not quenched.”
“You're a rum
sort of cloak-room clerk,” said the other.
“I am a priest,
Monsieur Flambeau,” said Brown, “and I am ready to hear your confession.”
The other stood
gasping for a few moments, and then staggered back into a chair.
The first two
courses of the dinner of The Twelve True Fishermen had proceeded with placid
success. I do not possess a copy of the menu; and if I did it would not convey
anything to anybody. It was written in a sort of super-French employed by
cooks, but quite unintelligible to Frenchmen. There was a tradition in the club
that the hors d'oeuvres should be various and manifold to the point of madness.
They were taken seriously because they were avowedly useless extras, like the
whole dinner and the whole club. There was also a tradition that the soup
course should be light and unpretending—a sort of simple and austere vigil for
the feast of fish that was to come. The talk was that strange, slight talk
which governs the British Empire, which governs it in secret, and yet would
scarcely enlighten an ordinary Englishman even if he could overhear it. Cabinet
ministers on both sides were alluded to by their Christian names with a sort of
bored benignity. The Radical Chancellor of the Exchequer, whom the whole Tory party
was supposed to be cursing for his extortions, was praised for his minor
poetry, or his saddle in the hunting field. The Tory leader, whom all Liberals
were supposed to hate as a tyrant, was discussed and, on the whole, praised—as
a Liberal. It seemed somehow that politicians were very important. And yet,
anything seemed important about them except their politics. Mr. Audley, the
chairman, was an amiable, elderly man who still wore Gladstone collars; he was
a kind of symbol of all that phantasmal and yet fixed society. He had never
done anything—not even anything wrong. He was not fast; he was not even
particularly rich. He was simply in the thing; and there was an end of it. No
party could ignore him, and if he had wished to be in the Cabinet he certainly
would have been put there. The Duke of Chester, the vice-president, was a young
and rising politician. That is to say, he was a pleasant youth, with flat, fair
hair and a freckled face, with moderate intelligence and enormous estates. In
public his appearances were always successful and his principle was simple
enough. When he thought of a joke he made it, and was called brilliant. When he
could not think of a joke he said that this was no time for trifling, and was
called able. In private, in a club of his own class, he was simply quite
pleasantly frank and silly, like a schoolboy. Mr. Audley, never having been in
politics, treated them a little more seriously. Sometimes he even embarrassed
the company by phrases suggesting that there was some difference between a
Liberal and a Conservative. He himself was a Conservative, even in private
life. He had a roll of grey hair over the back of his collar, like certain
old-fashioned statesmen, and seen from behind he looked like the man the empire
wants. Seen from the front he looked like a mild, self-indulgent bachelor, with
rooms in the Albany—which he was.
As has been
remarked, there were twenty-four seats at the terrace table, and only twelve
members of the club. Thus they could occupy the terrace in the most luxurious
style of all, being ranged along the inner side of the table, with no one
opposite, commanding an uninterrupted view of the garden, the colours of which
were still vivid, though evening was closing in somewhat luridly for the time
of year. The chairman sat in the centre of the line, and the vice-president at
the right-hand end of it. When the twelve guests first trooped into their seats
it was the custom (for some unknown reason) for all the fifteen waiters to
stand lining the wall like troops presenting arms to the king, while the fat
proprietor stood and bowed to the club with radiant surprise, as if he had
never heard of them before. But before the first chink of knife and fork this
army of retainers had vanished, only the one or two required to collect and
distribute the plates darting about in deathly silence. Mr. Lever, the
proprietor, of course had disappeared in convulsions of courtesy long before.
It would be exaggerative, indeed irreverent, to say that he ever positively
appeared again. But when the important course, the fish course, was being
brought on, there was—how shall I put it?—a vivid shadow, a projection of his
personality, which told that he was hovering near. The sacred fish course
consisted (to the eyes of the vulgar) in a sort of monstrous pudding, about the
size and shape of a wedding cake, in which some considerable number of
interesting fishes had finally lost the shapes which God had given to them. The
Twelve True Fishermen took up their celebrated fish knives and fish forks, and
approached it as gravely as if every inch of the pudding cost as much as the
silver fork it was eaten with. So it did, for all I know. This course was dealt
with in eager and devouring silence; and it was only when his plate was nearly
empty that the young duke made the ritual remark: “They can't do this anywhere
but here.”
“Nowhere,” said
Mr. Audley, in a deep bass voice, turning to the speaker and nodding his
venerable head a number of times. “Nowhere, assuredly, except here. It was
represented to me that at the Cafe Anglais—”
Here he was
interrupted and even agitated for a moment by the removal of his plate, but he
recaptured the valuable thread of his thoughts. “It was represented to me that
the same could be done at the Cafe Anglais. Nothing like it, sir,” he said,
shaking his head ruthlessly, like a hanging judge. “Nothing like it.”
“Overrated
place,” said a certain Colonel Pound, speaking (by the look of him) for the
first time for some months.
“Oh, I don't
know,” said the Duke of Chester, who was an optimist, “it's jolly good for some
things. You can't beat it at—”
A waiter came
swiftly along the room, and then stopped dead. His stoppage was as silent as
his tread; but all those vague and kindly gentlemen were so used to the utter
smoothness of the unseen machinery which surrounded and supported their lives,
that a waiter doing anything unexpected was a start and a jar. They felt as you
and I would feel if the inanimate world disobeyed— if a chair ran away from us.
The waiter stood
staring a few seconds, while there deepened on every face at table a strange
shame which is wholly the product of our time. It is the combination of modern
humanitarianism with the horrible modern abyss between the souls of the rich
and poor. A genuine historic aristocrat would have thrown things at the waiter,
beginning with empty bottles, and very probably ending with money. A genuine
democrat would have asked him, with comrade-like clearness of speech, what the
devil he was doing. But these modern plutocrats could not bear a poor man near
to them, either as a slave or as a friend. That something had gone wrong with
the servants was merely a dull, hot embarrassment. They did not want to be
brutal, and they dreaded the need to be benevolent. They wanted the thing, whatever
it was, to be over. It was over. The waiter, after standing for some seconds
rigid, like a cataleptic, turned round and ran madly out of the room.
When he
reappeared in the room, or rather in the doorway, it was in company with
another waiter, with whom he whispered and gesticulated with southern
fierceness. Then the first waiter went away, leaving the second waiter, and
reappeared with a third waiter. By the time a fourth waiter had joined this
hurried synod, Mr. Audley felt it necessary to break the silence in the
interests of Tact. He used a very loud cough, instead of a presidential hammer,
and said: “Splendid work young Moocher's doing in Burmah. Now, no other nation
in the world could have—”
A fifth waiter
had sped towards him like an arrow, and was whispering in his ear: “So sorry.
Important! Might the proprietor speak to you?”
The chairman
turned in disorder, and with a dazed stare saw Mr. Lever coming towards them
with his lumbering quickness. The gait of the good proprietor was indeed his
usual gait, but his face was by no means usual. Generally it was a genial
copper-brown; now it was a sickly yellow.
“You will pardon
me, Mr. Audley,” he said, with asthmatic breathlessness. “I have great
apprehensions. Your fish-plates, they are cleared away with the knife and fork
on them!”
“Well, I hope
so,” said the chairman, with some warmth.
“You see him?”
panted the excited hotel keeper; “you see the waiter who took them away? You
know him?”
“Know the
waiter?” answered Mr. Audley indignantly. “Certainly not!”
Mr. Lever opened
his hands with a gesture of agony. “I never send him,” he said. “I know not
when or why he come. I send my waiter to take away the plates, and he find them
already away.”
Mr. Audley still
looked rather too bewildered to be really the man the empire wants; none of the
company could say anything except the man of wood—Colonel Pound—who seemed
galvanised into an unnatural life. He rose rigidly from his chair, leaving all
the rest sitting, screwed his eyeglass into his eye, and spoke in a raucous
undertone as if he had half-forgotten how to speak. “Do you mean,” he said,
“that somebody has stolen our silver fish service?”
The proprietor
repeated the open-handed gesture with even greater helplessness and in a flash
all the men at the table were on their feet.
“Are all your
waiters here?” demanded the colonel, in his low, harsh accent.
“Yes; they're all
here. I noticed it myself,” cried the young duke, pushing his boyish face into
the inmost ring. “Always count 'em as I come in; they look so queer standing up
against the wall.”
“But surely one
cannot exactly remember,” began Mr. Audley, with heavy hesitation.
“I remember
exactly, I tell you,” cried the duke excitedly. “There never have been more
than fifteen waiters at this place, and there were no more than fifteen
tonight, I'll swear; no more and no less.”
The proprietor
turned upon him, quaking in a kind of palsy of surprise. “You say—you say,” he
stammered, “that you see all my fifteen waiters?”
“As usual,”
assented the duke. “What is the matter with that!”
“Nothing,” said
Lever, with a deepening accent, “only you did not. For one of zem is dead
upstairs.”
There was a
shocking stillness for an instant in that room. It may be (so supernatural is
the word death) that each of those idle men looked for a second at his soul,
and saw it as a small dried pea. One of them— the duke, I think—even said with
the idiotic kindness of wealth: “Is there anything we can do?”
“He has had a
priest,” said the Jew, not untouched.
Then, as to the
clang of doom, they awoke to their own position. For a few weird seconds they
had really felt as if the fifteenth waiter might be the ghost of the dead man
upstairs. They had been dumb under that oppression, for ghosts were to them an
embarrassment, like beggars. But the remembrance of the silver broke the spell
of the miraculous; broke it abruptly and with a brutal reaction. The colonel
flung over his chair and strode to the door. “If there was a fifteenth man
here, friends,” he said, “that fifteenth fellow was a thief. Down at once to
the front and back doors and secure everything; then we'll talk. The
twenty-four pearls of the club are worth recovering.”
Mr. Audley seemed
at first to hesitate about whether it was gentlemanly to be in such a hurry
about anything; but, seeing the duke dash down the stairs with youthful energy,
he followed with a more mature motion.
At the same
instant a sixth waiter ran into the room, and declared that he had found the
pile of fish plates on a sideboard, with no trace of the silver.
The crowd of
diners and attendants that tumbled helter-skelter down the passages divided
into two groups. Most of the Fishermen followed the proprietor to the front
room to demand news of any exit. Colonel Pound, with the chairman, the
vice-president, and one or two others darted down the corridor leading to the
servants' quarters, as the more likely line of escape. As they did so they
passed the dim alcove or cavern of the cloak room, and saw a short,
black-coated figure, presumably an attendant, standing a little way back in the
shadow of it.
“Hallo, there!”
called out the duke. “Have you seen anyone pass?”
The short figure
did not answer the question directly, but merely said: “Perhaps I have got what
you are looking for, gentlemen.”
They paused,
wavering and wondering, while he quietly went to the back of the cloak room,
and came back with both hands full of shining silver, which he laid out on the
counter as calmly as a salesman. It took the form of a dozen quaintly shaped
forks and knives.
“You—you—” began
the colonel, quite thrown off his balance at last. Then he peered into the dim
little room and saw two things: first, that the short, black-clad man was
dressed like a clergyman; and, second, that the window of the room behind him
was burst, as if someone had passed violently through. “Valuable things to
deposit in a cloak room, aren't they?” remarked the clergyman, with cheerful
composure.
“Did—did you
steal those things?” stammered Mr. Audley, with staring eyes.
“If I did,” said
the cleric pleasantly, “at least I am bringing them back again.”
“But you didn't,”
said Colonel Pound, still staring at the broken window.
“To make a clean
breast of it, I didn't,” said the other, with some humour. And he seated
himself quite gravely on a stool. “But you know who did,” said the, colonel.
“I don't know his
real name,” said the priest placidly, “but I know something of his fighting
weight, and a great deal about his spiritual difficulties. I formed the
physical estimate when he was trying to throttle me, and the moral estimate
when he repented.”
“Oh, I
say—repented!” cried young Chester, with a sort of crow of laughter.
Father Brown got
to his feet, putting his hands behind him. “Odd, isn't it,” he said, “that a
thief and a vagabond should repent, when so many who are rich and secure remain
hard and frivolous, and without fruit for God or man? But there, if you will
excuse me, you trespass a little upon my province. If you doubt the penitence
as a practical fact, there are your knives and forks. You are The Twelve True
Fishers, and there are all your silver fish. But He has made me a fisher of
men.”
“Did you catch
this man?” asked the colonel, frowning.
Father Brown
looked him full in his frowning face. “Yes,” he said, “I caught him, with an
unseen hook and an invisible line which is long enough to let him wander to the
ends of the world, and still to bring him back with a twitch upon the thread.”
There was a long
silence. All the other men present drifted away to carry the recovered silver
to their comrades, or to consult the proprietor about the queer condition of
affairs. But the grim-faced colonel still sat sideways on the counter, swinging
his long, lank legs and biting his dark moustache.
At last he said
quietly to the priest: “He must have been a clever fellow, but I think I know a
cleverer.”
“He was a clever
fellow,” answered the other, “but I am not quite sure of what other you mean.”
“I mean you,”
said the colonel, with a short laugh. “I don't want to get the fellow jailed;
make yourself easy about that. But I'd give a good many silver forks to know
exactly how you fell into this affair, and how you got the stuff out of him. I
reckon you're the most up-to-date devil of the present company.”
Father Brown
seemed rather to like the saturnine candour of the soldier. “Well,” he said,
smiling, “I mustn't tell you anything of the man's identity, or his own story,
of course; but there's no particular reason why I shouldn't tell you of the
mere outside facts which I found out for myself.”
He hopped over
the barrier with unexpected activity, and sat beside Colonel Pound, kicking his
short legs like a little boy on a gate. He began to tell the story as easily as
if he were telling it to an old friend by a Christmas fire.
“You see,
colonel,” he said, “I was shut up in that small room there doing some writing,
when I heard a pair of feet in this passage doing a dance that was as queer as
the dance of death. First came quick, funny little steps, like a man walking on
tiptoe for a wager; then came slow, careless, creaking steps, as of a big man
walking about with a cigar. But they were both made by the same feet, I swear,
and they came in rotation; first the run and then the walk, and then the run
again. I wondered at first idly and then wildly why a man should act these two
parts at once. One walk I knew; it was just like yours, colonel. It was the
walk of a well-fed gentleman waiting for something, who strolls about rather
because he is physically alert than because he is mentally impatient. I knew
that I knew the other walk, too, but I could not remember what it was. What
wild creature had I met on my travels that tore along on tiptoe in that
extraordinary style? Then I heard a clink of plates somewhere; and the answer
stood up as plain as St. Peter's. It was the walk of a waiter— that walk with
the body slanted forward, the eyes looking down, the ball of the toe spurning
away the ground, the coat tails and napkin flying. Then I thought for a minute
and a half more. And I believe I saw the manner of the crime, as clearly as if I
were going to commit it.”
Colonel Pound
looked at him keenly, but the speaker's mild grey eyes were fixed upon the
ceiling with almost empty wistfulness.
“A crime,” he
said slowly, “is like any other work of art. Don't look surprised; crimes are
by no means the only works of art that come from an infernal workshop. But
every work of art, divine or diabolic, has one indispensable mark—I mean, that
the centre of it is simple, however much the fulfilment may be complicated.
Thus, in Hamlet, let us say, the grotesqueness of the grave-digger, the flowers
of the mad girl, the fantastic finery of Osric, the pallor of the ghost and the
grin of the skull are all oddities in a sort of tangled wreath round one plain
tragic figure of a man in black. Well, this also,” he said, getting slowly down
from his seat with a smile, “this also is the plain tragedy of a man in black.
Yes,” he went on, seeing the colonel look up in some wonder, “the whole of this
tale turns on a black coat. In this, as in Hamlet, there are the rococo
excrescences—yourselves, let us say. There is the dead waiter, who was there
when he could not be there. There is the invisible hand that swept your table
clear of silver and melted into air. But every clever crime is founded
ultimately on some one quite simple fact—some fact that is not itself
mysterious. The mystification comes in covering it up, in leading men's
thoughts away from it. This large and subtle and (in the ordinary course) most
profitable crime, was built on the plain fact that a gentleman's evening dress
is the same as a waiter's. All the rest was acting, and thundering good acting,
too.”
“Still,” said the
colonel, getting up and frowning at his boots, “I am not sure that I
understand.”
“Colonel,” said
Father Brown, “I tell you that this archangel of impudence who stole your forks
walked up and down this passage twenty times in the blaze of all the lamps, in
the glare of all the eyes. He did not go and hide in dim corners where
suspicion might have searched for him. He kept constantly on the move in the
lighted corridors, and everywhere that he went he seemed to be there by right.
Don't ask me what he was like; you have seen him yourself six or seven times
tonight. You were waiting with all the other grand people in the reception room
at the end of the passage there, with the terrace just beyond. Whenever he came
among you gentlemen, he came in the lightning style of a waiter, with bent
head, flapping napkin and flying feet. He shot out on to the terrace, did
something to the table cloth, and shot back again towards the office and the
waiters' quarters. By the time he had come under the eye of the office clerk
and the waiters he had become another man in every inch of his body, in every
instinctive gesture. He strolled among the servants with the absent-minded
insolence which they have all seen in their patrons. It was no new thing to
them that a swell from the dinner party should pace all parts of the house like
an animal at the Zoo; they know that nothing marks the Smart Set more than a
habit of walking where one chooses. When he was magnificently weary of walking
down that particular passage he would wheel round and pace back past the
office; in the shadow of the arch just beyond he was altered as by a blast of
magic, and went hurrying forward again among the Twelve Fishermen, an
obsequious attendant. Why should the gentlemen look at a chance waiter? Why
should the waiters suspect a first-rate walking gentleman? Once or twice he
played the coolest tricks. In the proprietor's private quarters he called out
breezily for a syphon of soda water, saying he was thirsty. He said genially
that he would carry it himself, and he did; he carried it quickly and correctly
through the thick of you, a waiter with an obvious errand. Of course, it could
not have been kept up long, but it only had to be kept up till the end of the
fish course.
“His worst moment
was when the waiters stood in a row; but even then he contrived to lean against
the wall just round the corner in such a way that for that important instant
the waiters thought him a gentleman, while the gentlemen thought him a waiter.
The rest went like winking. If any waiter caught him away from the table, that
waiter caught a languid aristocrat. He had only to time himself two minutes
before the fish was cleared, become a swift servant, and clear it himself. He
put the plates down on a sideboard, stuffed the silver in his breast pocket,
giving it a bulgy look, and ran like a hare (I heard him coming) till he came
to the cloak room. There he had only to be a plutocrat again—a plutocrat called
away suddenly on business. He had only to give his ticket to the cloak-room
attendant, and go out again elegantly as he had come in. Only—only I happened
to be the cloak-room attendant.”
“What did you do
to him?” cried the colonel, with unusual intensity. “What did he tell you?”
“I beg your
pardon,” said the priest immovably, “that is where the story ends.”
“And the
interesting story begins,” muttered Pound. “I think I understand his
professional trick. But I don't seem to have got hold of yours.”
“I must be
going,” said Father Brown.
They walked
together along the passage to the entrance hall, where they saw the fresh,
freckled face of the Duke of Chester, who was bounding buoyantly along towards
them.
“Come along,
Pound,” he cried breathlessly. “I've been looking for you everywhere. The
dinner's going again in spanking style, and old Audley has got to make a speech
in honour of the forks being saved. We want to start some new ceremony, don't
you know, to commemorate the occasion. I say, you really got the goods back,
what do you suggest?”
“Why,” said the
colonel, eyeing him with a certain sardonic approval, “I should suggest that
henceforward we wear green coats, instead of black. One never knows what
mistakes may arise when one looks so like a waiter.”
“Oh, hang it
all!” said the young man, “a gentleman never looks like a waiter.”
“Nor a waiter
like a gentleman, I suppose,” said Colonel Pound, with the same lowering
laughter on his face. “Reverend sir, your friend must have been very smart to
act the gentleman.”
Father Brown
buttoned up his commonplace overcoat to the neck, for the night was stormy, and
took his commonplace umbrella from the stand.
“Yes,” he said;
“it must be very hard work to be a gentleman; but, do you know, I have
sometimes thought that it may be almost as laborious to be a waiter.”
And saying “Good
evening,” he pushed open the heavy doors of that palace of pleasures. The
golden gates closed behind him, and he went at a brisk walk through the damp,
dark streets in search of a penny omnibus.
The Flying Stars
“The most
beautiful crime I ever committed,” Flambeau would say in his highly moral old
age, “was also, by a singular coincidence, my last. It was committed at
Christmas. As an artist I had always attempted to provide crimes suitable to
the special season or landscapes in which I found myself, choosing this or that
terrace or garden for a catastrophe, as if for a statuary group. Thus squires
should be swindled in long rooms panelled with oak; while Jews, on the other
hand, should rather find themselves unexpectedly penniless among the lights and
screens of the Cafe Riche. Thus, in England, if I wished to relieve a dean of
his riches (which is not so easy as you might suppose), I wished to frame him,
if I make myself clear, in the green lawns and grey towers of some cathedral
town. Similarly, in France, when I had got money out of a rich and wicked
peasant (which is almost impossible), it gratified me to get his indignant head
relieved against a grey line of clipped poplars, and those solemn plains of
Gaul over which broods the mighty spirit of Millet.
“Well, my last
crime was a Christmas crime, a cheery, cosy, English middle-class crime; a
crime of Charles Dickens. I did it in a good old middle-class house near
Putney, a house with a crescent of carriage drive, a house with a stable by the
side of it, a house with the name on the two outer gates, a house with a monkey
tree. Enough, you know the species. I really think my imitation of Dickens's
style was dexterous and literary. It seems almost a pity I repented the same
evening.”
Flambeau would
then proceed to tell the story from the inside; and even from the inside it was
odd. Seen from the outside it was perfectly incomprehensible, and it is from
the outside that the stranger must study it. From this standpoint the drama may
be said to have begun when the front doors of the house with the stable opened
on the garden with the monkey tree, and a young girl came out with bread to
feed the birds on the afternoon of Boxing Day. She had a pretty face, with
brave brown eyes; but her figure was beyond conjecture, for she was so wrapped
up in brown furs that it was hard to say which was hair and which was fur. But
for the attractive face she might have been a small toddling bear.
The winter
afternoon was reddening towards evening, and already a ruby light was rolled
over the bloomless beds, filling them, as it were, with the ghosts of the dead
roses. On one side of the house stood the stable, on the other an alley or
cloister of laurels led to the larger garden behind. The young lady, having
scattered bread for the birds (for the fourth or fifth time that day, because
the dog ate it), passed unobutrusively down the lane of laurels and into a
glimmering plantation of evergreens behind. Here she gave an exclamation of
wonder, real or ritual, and looking up at the high garden wall above her,
beheld it fantastically bestridden by a somewhat fantastic figure.
“Oh, don't jump,
Mr. Crook,” she called out in some alarm; “it's much too high.”
The individual
riding the party wall like an aerial horse was a tall, angular young man, with
dark hair sticking up like a hair brush, intelligent and even distinguished
lineaments, but a sallow and almost alien complexion. This showed the more
plainly because he wore an aggressive red tie, the only part of his costume of
which he seemed to take any care. Perhaps it was a symbol. He took no notice of
the girl's alarmed adjuration, but leapt like a grasshopper to the ground
beside her, where he might very well have broken his legs.
“I think I was
meant to be a burglar,” he said placidly, “and I have no doubt I should have
been if I hadn't happened to be born in that nice house next door. I can't see
any harm in it, anyhow.”
“How can you say
such things!” she remonstrated.
“Well,” said the
young man, “if you're born on the wrong side of the wall, I can't see that it's
wrong to climb over it.”
“I never know
what you will say or do next,” she said.
“I don't often
know myself,” replied Mr. Crook; “but then I am on the right side of the wall
now.”
“And which is the
right side of the wall?” asked the young lady, smiling.
“Whichever side you
are on,” said the young man named Crook.
As they went
together through the laurels towards the front garden a motor horn sounded
thrice, coming nearer and nearer, and a car of splendid speed, great elegance,
and a pale green colour swept up to the front doors like a bird and stood
throbbing.
“Hullo, hullo!”
said the young man with the red tie, “here's somebody born on the right side,
anyhow. I didn't know, Miss Adams, that your Santa Claus was so modern as
this.”
“Oh, that's my
godfather, Sir Leopold Fischer. He always comes on Boxing Day.”
Then, after an
innocent pause, which unconsciously betrayed some lack of enthusiasm, Ruby
Adams added:
“He is very
kind.”
John Crook,
journalist, had heard of that eminent City magnate; and it was not his fault if
the City magnate had not heard of him; for in certain articles in The Clarion
or The New Age Sir Leopold had been dealt with austerely. But he said nothing
and grimly watched the unloading of the motor-car, which was rather a long
process. A large, neat chauffeur in green got out from the front, and a small,
neat manservant in grey got out from the back, and between them they deposited
Sir Leopold on the doorstep and began to unpack him, like some very carefully
protected parcel. Rugs enough to stock a bazaar, furs of all the beasts of the
forest, and scarves of all the colours of the rainbow were unwrapped one by
one, till they revealed something resembling the human form; the form of a
friendly, but foreign-looking old gentleman, with a grey goat-like beard and a
beaming smile, who rubbed his big fur gloves together.
Long before this
revelation was complete the two big doors of the porch had opened in the
middle, and Colonel Adams (father of the furry young lady) had come out himself
to invite his eminent guest inside. He was a tall, sunburnt, and very silent
man, who wore a red smoking-cap like a fez, making him look like one of the
English Sirdars or Pashas in Egypt. With him was his brother-in-law, lately
come from Canada, a big and rather boisterous young gentleman-farmer, with a
yellow beard, by name James Blount. With him also was the more insignificant
figure of the priest from the neighbouring Roman Church; for the colonel's late
wife had been a Catholic, and the children, as is common in such cases, had
been trained to follow her. Everything seemed undistinguished about the priest,
even down to his name, which was Brown; yet the colonel had always found
something companionable about him, and frequently asked him to such family
gatherings.
In the large
entrance hall of the house there was ample room even for Sir Leopold and the
removal of his wraps. Porch and vestibule, indeed, were unduly large in
proportion to the house, and formed, as it were, a big room with the front door
at one end, and the bottom of the staircase at the other. In front of the large
hall fire, over which hung the colonel's sword, the process was completed and
the company, including the saturnine Crook, presented to Sir Leopold Fischer.
That venerable financier, however, still seemed struggling with portions of his
well-lined attire, and at length produced from a very interior tail-coat
pocket, a black oval case which he radiantly explained to be his Christmas
present for his god-daughter. With an unaffected vain-glory that had something
disarming about it he held out the case before them all; it flew open at a
touch and half-blinded them. It was just as if a crystal fountain had spurted
in their eyes. In a nest of orange velvet lay like three eggs, three white and
vivid diamonds that seemed to set the very air on fire all round them. Fischer
stood beaming benevolently and drinking deep of the astonishment and ecstasy of
the girl, the grim admiration and gruff thanks of the colonel, the wonder of the
whole group.
“I'll put 'em
back now, my dear,” said Fischer, returning the case to the tails of his coat.
“I had to be careful of 'em coming down. They're the three great African
diamonds called “The Flying Stars,' because they've been stolen so often. All
the big criminals are on the track; but even the rough men about in the streets
and hotels could hardly have kept their hands off them. I might have lost them
on the road here. It was quite possible.”
“Quite natural, I
should say,” growled the man in the red tie. “I shouldn't blame 'em if they had
taken 'em. When they ask for bread, and you don't even give them a stone, I
think they might take the stone for themselves.”
“I won't have you
talking like that,” cried the girl, who was in a curious glow. “You've only
talked like that since you became a horrid what's-his-name. You know what I
mean. What do you call a man who wants to embrace the chimney-sweep?”
“A saint,” said
Father Brown.
“I think,” said
Sir Leopold, with a supercilious smile, “that Ruby means a Socialist.”
“A radical does
not mean a man who lives on radishes,” remarked Crook, with some impatience;
and a Conservative does not mean a man who preserves jam. Neither, I assure
you, does a Socialist mean a man who desires a social evening with the chimney-sweep.
A Socialist means a man who wants all the chimneys swept and all the
chimney-sweeps paid for it.”
“But who won't
allow you,” put in the priest in a low voice, “to own your own soot.”
Crook looked at
him with an eye of interest and even respect. “Does one want to own soot?” he
asked.
“One might,”
answered Brown, with speculation in his eye. “I've heard that gardeners use it.
And I once made six children happy at Christmas when the conjuror didn't come,
entirely with soot—applied externally.”
“Oh, splendid,”
cried Ruby. “Oh, I wish you'd do it to this company.”
The boisterous
Canadian, Mr. Blount, was lifting his loud voice in applause, and the
astonished financier his (in some considerable deprecation), when a knock
sounded at the double front doors. The priest opened them, and they showed
again the front garden of evergreens, monkey-tree and all, now gathering gloom
against a gorgeous violet sunset. The scene thus framed was so coloured and
quaint, like a back scene in a play, that they forgot a moment the
insignificant figure standing in the door. He was dusty-looking and in a frayed
coat, evidently a common messenger. “Any of you gentlemen Mr. Blount?” he
asked, and held forward a letter doubtfully. Mr. Blount started, and stopped in
his shout of assent. Ripping up the envelope with evident astonishment he read
it; his face clouded a little, and then cleared, and he turned to his
brother-in-law and host.
“I'm sick at
being such a nuisance, colonel,” he said, with the cheery colonial conventions;
“but would it upset you if an old acquaintance called on me here tonight on
business? In point of fact it's Florian, that famous French acrobat and comic
actor; I knew him years ago out West (he was a French-Canadian by birth), and
he seems to have business for me, though I hardly guess what.”
“Of course, of
course,” replied the colonel carelessly—”My dear chap, any friend of yours. No
doubt he will prove an acquisition.”
“He'll black his
face, if that's what you mean,” cried Blount, laughing. “I don't doubt he'd
black everyone else's eyes. I don't care; I'm not refined. I like the jolly old
pantomime where a man sits on his top hat.”
“Not on mine,
please,” said Sir Leopold Fischer, with dignity.
“Well, well,”
observed Crook, airily, “don't let's quarrel. There are lower jokes than
sitting on a top hat.”
Dislike of the
red-tied youth, born of his predatory opinions and evident intimacy with the
pretty godchild, led Fischer to say, in his most sarcastic, magisterial manner:
“No doubt you have found something much lower than sitting on a top hat. What
is it, pray?”
“Letting a top
hat sit on you, for instance,” said the Socialist.
“Now, now, now,”
cried the Canadian farmer with his barbarian benevolence, “don't let's spoil a
jolly evening. What I say is, let's do something for the company tonight. Not
blacking faces or sitting on hats, if you don't like those— but something of
the sort. Why couldn't we have a proper old English pantomime—clown, columbine,
and so on. I saw one when I left England at twelve years old, and it's blazed
in my brain like a bonfire ever since. I came back to the old country only last
year, and I find the thing's extinct. Nothing but a lot of snivelling fairy
plays. I want a hot poker and a policeman made into sausages, and they give me princesses
moralising by moonlight, Blue Birds, or something. Blue Beard's more in my
line, and him I like best when he turned into the pantaloon.”
“I'm all for
making a policeman into sausages,” said John Crook. “It's a better definition
of Socialism than some recently given. But surely the get-up would be too big a
business.”
“Not a scrap,”
cried Blount, quite carried away. “A harlequinade's the quickest thing we can
do, for two reasons. First, one can gag to any degree; and, second, all the
objects are household things—tables and towel-horses and washing baskets, and
things like that.”
“That's true,”
admitted Crook, nodding eagerly and walking about. “But I'm afraid I can't have
my policeman's uniform? Haven't killed a policeman lately.”
Blount frowned thoughtfully
a space, and then smote his thigh. “Yes, we can!” he cried. “I've got Florian's
address here, and he knows every costumier in London. I'll phone him to bring a
police dress when he comes.” And he went bounding away to the telephone.
“Oh, it's
glorious, godfather,” cried Ruby, almost dancing. “I'll be columbine and you
shall be pantaloon.”
The millionaire
held himself stiff with a sort of heathen solemnity. “I think, my dear,” he
said, “you must get someone else for pantaloon.”
“I will be
pantaloon, if you like,” said Colonel Adams, taking his cigar out of his mouth,
and speaking for the first and last time.
“You ought to
have a statue,” cried the Canadian, as he came back, radiant, from the
telephone. “There, we are all fitted. Mr. Crook shall be clown; he's a
journalist and knows all the oldest jokes. I can be harlequin, that only wants
long legs and jumping about. My friend Florian 'phones he's bringing the police
costume; he's changing on the way. We can act it in this very hall, the
audience sitting on those broad stairs opposite, one row above another. These
front doors can be the back scene, either open or shut. Shut, you see an
English interior. Open, a moonlit garden. It all goes by magic.” And snatching
a chance piece of billiard chalk from his pocket, he ran it across the hall
floor, half-way between the front door and the staircase, to mark the line of
the footlights.
How even such a
banquet of bosh was got ready in the time remained a riddle. But they went at
it with that mixture of recklessness and industry that lives when youth is in a
house; and youth was in that house that night, though not all may have isolated
the two faces and hearts from which it flamed. As always happens, the invention
grew wilder and wilder through the very tameness of the bourgeois conventions
from which it had to create. The columbine looked charming in an outstanding
skirt that strangely resembled the large lamp-shade in the drawing-room. The
clown and pantaloon made themselves white with flour from the cook, and red
with rouge from some other domestic, who remained (like all true Christian
benefactors) anonymous. The harlequin, already clad in silver paper out of
cigar boxes, was, with difficulty, prevented from smashing the old Victorian
lustre chandeliers, that he might cover himself with resplendent crystals. In
fact he would certainly have done so, had not Ruby unearthed some old pantomime
paste jewels she had worn at a fancy dress party as the Queen of Diamonds.
Indeed, her uncle, James Blount, was getting almost out of hand in his
excitement; he was like a schoolboy. He put a paper donkey's head unexpectedly
on Father Brown, who bore it patiently, and even found some private manner of
moving his ears. He even essayed to put the paper donkey's tail to the
coat-tails of Sir Leopold Fischer. This, however, was frowned down. “Uncle is
too absurd,” cried Ruby to Crook, round whose shoulders she had seriously
placed a string of sausages. “Why is he so wild?”
“He is harlequin
to your columbine,” said Crook. “I am only the clown who makes the old jokes.”
“I wish you were
the harlequin,” she said, and left the string of sausages swinging.
Father Brown,
though he knew every detail done behind the scenes, and had even evoked
applause by his transformation of a pillow into a pantomime baby, went round to
the front and sat among the audience with all the solemn expectation of a child
at his first matinee. The spectators were few, relations, one or two local
friends, and the servants; Sir Leopold sat in the front seat, his full and
still fur-collared figure largely obscuring the view of the little cleric
behind him; but it has never been settled by artistic authorities whether the
cleric lost much. The pantomime was utterly chaotic, yet not contemptible;
there ran through it a rage of improvisation which came chiefly from Crook the
clown. Commonly he was a clever man, and he was inspired tonight with a wild
omniscience, a folly wiser than the world, that which comes to a young man who
has seen for an instant a particular expression on a particular face. He was
supposed to be the clown, but he was really almost everything else, the author
(so far as there was an author), the prompter, the scene-painter, the
scene-shifter, and, above all, the orchestra. At abrupt intervals in the
outrageous performance he would hurl himself in full costume at the piano and
bang out some popular music equally absurd and appropriate.
The climax of
this, as of all else, was the moment when the two front doors at the back of
the scene flew open, showing the lovely moonlit garden, but showing more
prominently the famous professional guest; the great Florian, dressed up as a
policeman. The clown at the piano played the constabulary chorus in the
“Pirates of Penzance,” but it was drowned in the deafening applause, for every
gesture of the great comic actor was an admirable though restrained version of
the carriage and manner of the police. The harlequin leapt upon him and hit him
over the helmet; the pianist playing “Where did you get that hat?” he faced
about in admirably simulated astonishment, and then the leaping harlequin hit
him again (the pianist suggesting a few bars of “Then we had another one”).
Then the harlequin rushed right into the arms of the policeman and fell on top
of him, amid a roar of applause. Then it was that the strange actor gave that
celebrated imitation of a dead man, of which the fame still lingers round
Putney. It was almost impossible to believe that a living person could appear
so limp.
The athletic
harlequin swung him about like a sack or twisted or tossed him like an Indian
club; all the time to the most maddeningly ludicrous tunes from the piano. When
the harlequin heaved the comic constable heavily off the floor the clown played
“I arise from dreams of thee.” When he shuffled him across his back, “With my
bundle on my shoulder,” and when the harlequin finally let fall the policeman
with a most convincing thud, the lunatic at the instrument struck into a
jingling measure with some words which are still believed to have been, “I sent
a letter to my love and on the way I dropped it.”
At about this
limit of mental anarchy Father Brown's view was obscured altogether; for the
City magnate in front of him rose to his full height and thrust his hands
savagely into all his pockets. Then he sat down nervously, still fumbling, and
then stood up again. For an instant it seemed seriously likely that he would
stride across the footlights; then he turned a glare at the clown playing the
piano; and then he burst in silence out of the room.
The priest had
only watched for a few more minutes the absurd but not inelegant dance of the
amateur harlequin over his splendidly unconscious foe. With real though rude
art, the harlequin danced slowly backwards out of the door into the garden, which
was full of moonlight and stillness. The vamped dress of silver paper and
paste, which had been too glaring in the footlights, looked more and more
magical and silvery as it danced away under a brilliant moon. The audience was
closing in with a cataract of applause, when Brown felt his arm abruptly
touched, and he was asked in a whisper to come into the colonel's study.
He followed his
summoner with increasing doubt, which was not dispelled by a solemn comicality
in the scene of the study. There sat Colonel Adams, still unaffectedly dressed
as a pantaloon, with the knobbed whalebone nodding above his brow, but with his
poor old eyes sad enough to have sobered a Saturnalia. Sir Leopold Fischer was
leaning against the mantelpiece and heaving with all the importance of panic.
“This is a very
painful matter, Father Brown,” said Adams. “The truth is, those diamonds we all
saw this afternoon seem to have vanished from my friend's tail-coat pocket. And
as you—”
“As I,”
supplemented Father Brown, with a broad grin, “was sitting just behind him—”
“Nothing of the
sort shall be suggested,” said Colonel Adams, with a firm look at Fischer,
which rather implied that some such thing had been suggested. “I only ask you
to give me the assistance that any gentleman might give.”
“Which is turning
out his pockets,” said Father Brown, and proceeded to do so, displaying seven
and sixpence, a return ticket, a small silver crucifix, a small breviary, and a
stick of chocolate.
The colonel
looked at him long, and then said, “Do you know, I should like to see the
inside of your head more than the inside of your pockets. My daughter is one of
your people, I know; well, she has lately—” and he stopped.
“She has lately,”
cried out old Fischer, “opened her father's house to a cut-throat Socialist,
who says openly he would steal anything from a richer man. This is the end of
it. Here is the richer man—and none the richer.”
“If you want the
inside of my head you can have it,” said Brown rather wearily. “What it's worth
you can say afterwards. But the first thing I find in that disused pocket is
this: that men who mean to steal diamonds don't talk Socialism. They are more
likely,” he added demurely, “to denounce it.”
Both the others
shifted sharply and the priest went on:
“You see, we know
these people, more or less. That Socialist would no more steal a diamond than a
Pyramid. We ought to look at once to the one man we don't know. The fellow
acting the policeman—Florian. Where is he exactly at this minute, I wonder.”
The pantaloon
sprang erect and strode out of the room. An interlude ensued, during which the
millionaire stared at the priest, and the priest at his breviary; then the
pantaloon returned and said, with staccato gravity, “The policeman is still
lying on the stage. The curtain has gone up and down six times; he is still
lying there.”
Father Brown
dropped his book and stood staring with a look of blank mental ruin. Very
slowly a light began to creep in his grey eyes, and then he made the scarcely
obvious answer.
“Please forgive
me, colonel, but when did your wife die?”
“Wife!” replied
the staring soldier, “she died this year two months. Her brother James arrived
just a week too late to see her.”
The little priest
bounded like a rabbit shot. “Come on!” he cried in quite unusual excitement.
“Come on! We've got to go and look at that policeman!”
They rushed on to
the now curtained stage, breaking rudely past the columbine and clown (who
seemed whispering quite contentedly), and Father Brown bent over the prostrate
comic policeman.
“Chloroform,” he
said as he rose; “I only guessed it just now.”
There was a
startled stillness, and then the colonel said slowly, “Please say seriously
what all this means.”
Father Brown
suddenly shouted with laughter, then stopped, and only struggled with it for
instants during the rest of his speech. “Gentlemen,” he gasped, “there's not
much time to talk. I must run after the criminal. But this great French actor
who played the policeman—this clever corpse the harlequin waltzed with and
dandled and threw about—he was—” His voice again failed him, and he turned his
back to run.
“He was?” called
Fischer inquiringly.
“A real
policeman,” said Father Brown, and ran away into the dark.
There were
hollows and bowers at the extreme end of that leafy garden, in which the
laurels and other immortal shrubs showed against sapphire sky and silver moon,
even in that midwinter, warm colours as of the south. The green gaiety of the
waving laurels, the rich purple indigo of the night, the moon like a monstrous
crystal, make an almost irresponsible romantic picture; and among the top
branches of the garden trees a strange figure is climbing, who looks not so
much romantic as impossible. He sparkles from head to heel, as if clad in ten
million moons; the real moon catches him at every movement and sets a new inch
of him on fire. But he swings, flashing and successful, from the short tree in
this garden to the tall, rambling tree in the other, and only stops there
because a shade has slid under the smaller tree and has unmistakably called up
to him.
“Well, Flambeau,”
says the voice, “you really look like a Flying Star; but that always means a
Falling Star at last.”
The silver,
sparkling figure above seems to lean forward in the laurels and, confident of
escape, listens to the little figure below.
“You never did
anything better, Flambeau. It was clever to come from Canada (with a Paris
ticket, I suppose) just a week after Mrs. Adams died, when no one was in a mood
to ask questions. It was cleverer to have marked down the Flying Stars and the
very day of Fischer's coming. But there's no cleverness, but mere genius, in
what followed. Stealing the stones, I suppose, was nothing to you. You could
have done it by sleight of hand in a hundred other ways besides that pretence
of putting a paper donkey's tail to Fischer's coat. But in the rest you
eclipsed yourself.”
The silvery
figure among the green leaves seems to linger as if hypnotised, though his
escape is easy behind him; he is staring at the man below.
“Oh, yes,” says
the man below, “I know all about it. I know you not only forced the pantomime,
but put it to a double use. You were going to steal the stones quietly; news
came by an accomplice that you were already suspected, and a capable police
officer was coming to rout you up that very night. A common thief would have
been thankful for the warning and fled; but you are a poet. You already had the
clever notion of hiding the jewels in a blaze of false stage jewellery. Now,
you saw that if the dress were a harlequin's the appearance of a policeman
would be quite in keeping. The worthy officer started from Putney police
station to find you, and walked into the queerest trap ever set in this world.
When the front door opened he walked straight on to the stage of a Christmas
pantomime, where he could be kicked, clubbed, stunned and drugged by the
dancing harlequin, amid roars of laughter from all the most respectable people
in Putney. Oh, you will never do anything better. And now, by the way, you
might give me back those diamonds.”
The green branch
on which the glittering figure swung, rustled as if in astonishment; but the
voice went on:
“I want you to
give them back, Flambeau, and I want you to give up this life. There is still
youth and honour and humour in you; don't fancy they will last in that trade.
Men may keep a sort of level of good, but no man has ever been able to keep on
one level of evil. That road goes down and down. The kind man drinks and turns
cruel; the frank man kills and lies about it. Many a man I've known started
like you to be an honest outlaw, a merry robber of the rich, and ended stamped
into slime. Maurice Blum started out as an anarchist of principle, a father of
the poor; he ended a greasy spy and tale-bearer that both sides used and
despised. Harry Burke started his free money movement sincerely enough; now
he's sponging on a half-starved sister for endless brandies and sodas. Lord
Amber went into wild society in a sort of chivalry; now he's paying blackmail
to the lowest vultures in London. Captain Barillon was the great
gentleman-apache before your time; he died in a madhouse, screaming with fear
of the “narks” and receivers that had betrayed him and hunted him down. I know
the woods look very free behind you, Flambeau; I know that in a flash you could
melt into them like a monkey. But some day you will be an old grey monkey,
Flambeau. You will sit up in your free forest cold at heart and close to death,
and the tree-tops will be very bare.”
Everything
continued still, as if the small man below held the other in the tree in some
long invisible leash; and he went on:
“Your downward
steps have begun. You used to boast of doing nothing mean, but you are doing
something mean tonight. You are leaving suspicion on an honest boy with a good
deal against him already; you are separating him from the woman he loves and
who loves him. But you will do meaner things than that before you die.”
Three flashing
diamonds fell from the tree to the turf. The small man stooped to pick them up,
and when he looked up again the green cage of the tree was emptied of its
silver bird.
The restoration
of the gems (accidentally picked up by Father Brown, of all people) ended the
evening in uproarious triumph; and Sir Leopold, in his height of good humour,
even told the priest that though he himself had broader views, he could respect
those whose creed required them to be cloistered and ignorant of this world.
The Invisible Man
In the cool blue
twilight of two steep streets in Camden Town, the shop at the corner, a
confectioner's, glowed like the butt of a cigar. One should rather say,
perhaps, like the butt of a firework, for the light was of many colours and
some complexity, broken up by many mirrors and dancing on many gilt and
gaily-coloured cakes and sweetmeats. Against this one fiery glass were glued
the noses of many gutter-snipes, for the chocolates were all wrapped in those
red and gold and green metallic colours which are almost better than chocolate
itself; and the huge white wedding-cake in the window was somehow at once
remote and satisfying, just as if the whole North Pole were good to eat. Such
rainbow provocations could naturally collect the youth of the neighbourhood up
to the ages of ten or twelve. But this corner was also attractive to youth at a
later stage; and a young man, not less than twenty-four, was staring into the
same shop window. To him, also, the shop was of fiery charm, but this
attraction was not wholly to be explained by chocolates; which, however, he was
far from despising.
He was a tall,
burly, red-haired young man, with a resolute face but a listless manner. He
carried under his arm a flat, grey portfolio of black-and-white sketches, which
he had sold with more or less success to publishers ever since his uncle (who
was an admiral) had disinherited him for Socialism, because of a lecture which
he had delivered against that economic theory. His name was John Turnbull
Angus.
Entering at last,
he walked through the confectioner's shop to the back room, which was a sort of
pastry-cook restaurant, merely raising his hat to the young lady who was
serving there. She was a dark, elegant, alert girl in black, with a high colour
and very quick, dark eyes; and after the ordinary interval she followed him
into the inner room to take his order.
His order was
evidently a usual one. “I want, please,” he said with precision, “one halfpenny
bun and a small cup of black coffee.” An instant before the girl could turn
away he added, “Also, I want you to marry me.”
The young lady of
the shop stiffened suddenly and said, “Those are jokes I don't allow.”
The red-haired
young man lifted grey eyes of an unexpected gravity.
“Really and
truly,” he said, “it's as serious—as serious as the halfpenny bun. It is expensive,
like the bun; one pays for it. It is indigestible, like the bun. It hurts.”
The dark young
lady had never taken her dark eyes off him, but seemed to be studying him with
almost tragic exactitude. At the end of her scrutiny she had something like the
shadow of a smile, and she sat down in a chair.
“Don't you
think,” observed Angus, absently, “that it's rather cruel to eat these
halfpenny buns? They might grow up into penny buns. I shall give up these
brutal sports when we are married.”
The dark young
lady rose from her chair and walked to the window, evidently in a state of
strong but not unsympathetic cogitation. When at last she swung round again
with an air of resolution she was bewildered to observe that the young man was
carefully laying out on the table various objects from the shop-window. They
included a pyramid of highly coloured sweets, several plates of sandwiches, and
the two decanters containing that mysterious port and sherry which are peculiar
to pastry-cooks. In the middle of this neat arrangement he had carefully let
down the enormous load of white sugared cake which had been the huge ornament
of the window.
“What on earth
are you doing?” she asked.
“Duty, my dear
Laura,” he began.
“Oh, for the
Lord's sake, stop a minute,” she cried, “and don't talk to me in that way. I
mean, what is all that?”
“A ceremonial
meal, Miss Hope.”
“And what is
that?” she asked impatiently, pointing to the mountain of sugar.
“The
wedding-cake, Mrs. Angus,” he said.
The girl marched
to that article, removed it with some clatter, and put it back in the shop
window; she then returned, and, putting her elegant elbows on the table,
regarded the young man not unfavourably but with considerable exasperation.
“You don't give
me any time to think,” she said.
“I'm not such a
fool,” he answered; “that's my Christian humility.”
She was still
looking at him; but she had grown considerably graver behind the smile.
“Mr. Angus,” she
said steadily, “before there is a minute more of this nonsense I must tell you
something about myself as shortly as I can. '”
“Delighted,”
replied Angus gravely. “You might tell me something about myself, too, while
you are about it.”
“Oh, do hold your
tongue and listen,” she said. “It's nothing that I'm ashamed of, and it isn't
even anything that I'm specially sorry about. But what would you say if there
were something that is no business of mine and yet is my nightmare?”
“In that case,”
said the man seriously, “I should suggest that you bring back the cake.”
“Well, you must
listen to the story first,” said Laura, persistently. “To begin with, I must
tell you that my father owned the inn called the “Red Fish' at Ludbury, and I
used to serve people in the bar.”
“I have often
wondered,” he said, “why there was a kind of a Christian air about this one
confectioner's shop.”
“Ludbury is a
sleepy, grassy little hole in the Eastern Counties, and the only kind of people
who ever came to the “Red Fish' were occasional commercial travellers, and for
the rest, the most awful people you can see, only you've never seen them. I
mean little, loungy men, who had just enough to live on and had nothing to do
but lean about in bar-rooms and bet on horses, in bad clothes that were just
too good for them. Even these wretched young rotters were not very common at
our house; but there were two of them that were a lot too common— common in
every sort of way. They both lived on money of their own, and were wearisomely
idle and over-dressed. But yet I was a bit sorry for them, because I half
believe they slunk into our little empty bar because each of them had a slight
deformity; the sort of thing that some yokels laugh at. It wasn't exactly a
deformity either; it was more an oddity. One of them was a surprisingly small
man, something like a dwarf, or at least like a jockey. He was not at all
jockeyish to look at, though; he had a round black head and a well-trimmed
black beard, bright eyes like a bird's; he jingled money in his pockets; he
jangled a great gold watch chain; and he never turned up except dressed just too
much like a gentleman to be one. He was no fool though, though a futile idler;
he was curiously clever at all kinds of things that couldn't be the slightest
use; a sort of impromptu conjuring; making fifteen matches set fire to each
other like a regular firework; or cutting a banana or some such thing into a
dancing doll. His name was Isidore Smythe; and I can see him still, with his
little dark face, just coming up to the counter, making a jumping kangaroo out
of five cigars.
“The other fellow
was more silent and more ordinary; but somehow he alarmed me much more than
poor little Smythe. He was very tall and slight, and light-haired; his nose had
a high bridge, and he might almost have been handsome in a spectral sort of
way; but he had one of the most appalling squints I have ever seen or heard of.
When he looked straight at you, you didn't know where you were yourself, let
alone what he was looking at. I fancy this sort of disfigurement embittered the
poor chap a little; for while Smythe was ready to show off his monkey tricks
anywhere, James Welkin (that was the squinting man's name) never did anything
except soak in our bar parlour, and go for great walks by himself in the flat,
grey country all round. All the same, I think Smythe, too, was a little sensitive
about being so small, though he carried it off more smartly. And so it was that
I was really puzzled, as well as startled, and very sorry, when they both
offered to marry me in the same week.
“Well, I did what
I've since thought was perhaps a silly thing. But, after all, these freaks were
my friends in a way; and I had a horror of their thinking I refused them for
the real reason, which was that they were so impossibly ugly. So I made up some
gas of another sort, about never meaning to marry anyone who hadn't carved his
way in the world. I said it was a point of principle with me not to live on
money that was just inherited like theirs. Two days after I had talked in this
well-meaning sort of way, the whole trouble began. The first thing I heard was that
both of them had gone off to seek their fortunes, as if they were in some silly
fairy tale.
“Well, I've never
seen either of them from that day to this. But I've had two letters from the
little man called Smythe, and really they were rather exciting.”
“Ever heard of
the other man?” asked Angus.
“No, he never
wrote,” said the girl, after an instant's hesitation. “Smythe's first letter
was simply to say that he had started out walking with Welkin to London; but
Welkin was such a good walker that the little man dropped out of it, and took a
rest by the roadside. He happened to be picked up by some travelling show, and,
partly because he was nearly a dwarf, and partly because he was really a clever
little wretch, he got on quite well in the show business, and was soon sent up
to the Aquarium, to do some tricks that I forget. That was his first letter.
His second was much more of a startler, and I only got it last week.”
The man called
Angus emptied his coffee-cup and regarded her with mild and patient eyes. Her
own mouth took a slight twist of laughter as she resumed, “I suppose you've
seen on the hoardings all about this “Smythe's Silent Service'? Or you must be
the only person that hasn't. Oh, I don't know much about it, it's some
clockwork invention for doing all the housework by machinery. You know the sort
of thing: “Press a Button—A Butler who Never Drinks. ' “Turn a Handle—Ten
Housemaids who Never Flirt. ' You must have seen the advertisements. Well,
whatever these machines are, they are making pots of money; and they are making
it all for that little imp whom I knew down in Ludbury. I can't help feeling
pleased the poor little chap has fallen on his feet; but the plain fact is, I'm
in terror of his turning up any minute and telling me he's carved his way in
the world— as he certainly has.”
“And the other
man?” repeated Angus with a sort of obstinate quietude.
Laura Hope got to
her feet suddenly. “My friend,” she said, “I think you are a witch. Yes, you
are quite right. I have not seen a line of the other man's writing; and I have
no more notion than the dead of what or where he is. But it is of him that I am
frightened. It is he who is all about my path. It is he who has half driven me
mad. Indeed, I think he has driven me mad; for I have felt him where he could
not have been, and I have heard his voice when he could not have spoken.”
“Well, my dear,”
said the young man, cheerfully, “if he were Satan himself, he is done for now
you have told somebody. One goes mad all alone, old girl. But when was it you fancied
you felt and heard our squinting friend?”
“I heard James
Welkin laugh as plainly as I hear you speak,” said the girl, steadily. “There
was nobody there, for I stood just outside the shop at the corner, and could
see down both streets at once. I had forgotten how he laughed, though his laugh
was as odd as his squint. I had not thought of him for nearly a year. But it's
a solemn truth that a few seconds later the first letter came from his rival.”
“Did you ever
make the spectre speak or squeak, or anything?” asked Angus, with some
interest.
Laura suddenly
shuddered, and then said, with an unshaken voice, “Yes. Just when I had
finished reading the second letter from Isidore Smythe announcing his success.
Just then, I heard Welkin say, “He shan't have you, though. ' It was quite
plain, as if he were in the room. It is awful, I think I must be mad.”
“If you really
were mad,” said the young man, “you would think you must be sane. But certainly
there seems to me to be something a little rum about this unseen gentleman. Two
heads are better than one—I spare you allusions to any other organs and really,
if you would allow me, as a sturdy, practical man, to bring back the
wedding-cake out of the window—”
Even as he spoke,
there was a sort of steely shriek in the street outside, and a small motor,
driven at devilish speed, shot up to the door of the shop and stuck there. In
the same flash of time a small man in a shiny top hat stood stamping in the
outer room.
Angus, who had
hitherto maintained hilarious ease from motives of mental hygiene, revealed the
strain of his soul by striding abruptly out of the inner room and confronting
the new-comer. A glance at him was quite sufficient to confirm the savage
guesswork of a man in love. This very dapper but dwarfish figure, with the
spike of black beard carried insolently forward, the clever unrestful eyes, the
neat but very nervous fingers, could be none other than the man just described
to him: Isidore Smythe, who made dolls out of banana skins and match-boxes;
Isidore Smythe, who made millions out of undrinking butlers and unflirting
housemaids of metal. For a moment the two men, instinctively understanding each
other's air of possession, looked at each other with that curious cold
generosity which is the soul of rivalry.
Mr. Smythe,
however, made no allusion to the ultimate ground of their antagonism, but said
simply and explosively, “Has Miss Hope seen that thing on the window?”
“On the window?”
repeated the staring Angus.
“There's no time
to explain other things,” said the small millionaire shortly. “There's some
tomfoolery going on here that has to be investigated.”
He pointed his
polished walking-stick at the window, recently depleted by the bridal
preparations of Mr. Angus; and that gentleman was astonished to see along the
front of the glass a long strip of paper pasted, which had certainly not been
on the window when he looked through it some time before. Following the
energetic Smythe outside into the street, he found that some yard and a half of
stamp paper had been carefully gummed along the glass outside, and on this was
written in straggly characters, “If you marry Smythe, he will die.”
“Laura,” said
Angus, putting his big red head into the shop, “you're not mad.”
“It's the writing
of that fellow Welkin,” said Smythe gruffly. “I haven't seen him for years, but
he's always bothering me. Five times in the last fortnight he's had threatening
letters left at my flat, and I can't even find out who leaves them, let alone
if it is Welkin himself. The porter of the flats swears that no suspicious
characters have been seen, and here he has pasted up a sort of dado on a public
shop window, while the people in the shop—”
“Quite so,” said
Angus modestly, “while the people in the shop were having tea. Well, sir, I can
assure you I appreciate your common sense in dealing so directly with the
matter. We can talk about other things afterwards. The fellow cannot be very
far off yet, for I swear there was no paper there when I went last to the
window, ten or fifteen minutes ago. On the other hand, he's too far off to be chased,
as we don't even know the direction. If you'll take my advice, Mr. Smythe,
you'll put this at once in the hands of some energetic inquiry man, private
rather than public. I know an extremely clever fellow, who has set up in
business five minutes from here in your car. His name's Flambeau, and though
his youth was a bit stormy, he's a strictly honest man now, and his brains are
worth money. He lives in Lucknow Mansions, Hampstead.”
“That is odd,”
said the little man, arching his black eyebrows. “I live, myself, in Himylaya
Mansions, round the corner. Perhaps you might care to come with me; I can go to
my rooms and sort out these queer Welkin documents, while you run round and get
your friend the detective.”
“You are very
good,” said Angus politely. “Well, the sooner we act the better.”
Both men, with a
queer kind of impromptu fairness, took the same sort of formal farewell of the
lady, and both jumped into the brisk little car. As Smythe took the handles and
they turned the great corner of the street, Angus was amused to see a
gigantesque poster of “Smythe's Silent Service,” with a picture of a huge
headless iron doll, carrying a saucepan with the legend, “A Cook Who is Never
Cross.”
“I use them in my
own flat,” said the little black-bearded man, laughing, “partly for
advertisements, and partly for real convenience. Honestly, and all above board,
those big clockwork dolls of mine do bring your coals or claret or a timetable
quicker than any live servants I've ever known, if you know which knob to
press. But I'll never deny, between ourselves, that such servants have their
disadvantages, too.
“Indeed?” said
Angus; “is there something they can't do?”
“Yes,” replied
Smythe coolly; “they can't tell me who left those threatening letters at my
flat.”
The man's motor
was small and swift like himself; in fact, like his domestic service, it was of
his own invention. If he was an advertising quack, he was one who believed in
his own wares. The sense of something tiny and flying was accentuated as they
swept up long white curves of road in the dead but open daylight of evening.
Soon the white curves came sharper and dizzier; they were upon ascending
spirals, as they say in the modern religions. For, indeed, they were cresting a
corner of London which is almost as precipitous as Edinburgh, if not quite so
picturesque. Terrace rose above terrace, and the special tower of flats they
sought, rose above them all to almost Egyptian height, gilt by the level
sunset. The change, as they turned the corner and entered the crescent known as
Himylaya Mansions, was as abrupt as the opening of a window; for they found
that pile of flats sitting above London as above a green sea of slate. Opposite
to the mansions, on the other side of the gravel crescent, was a bushy
enclosure more like a steep hedge or dyke than a garden, and some way below
that ran a strip of artificial water, a sort of canal, like the moat of that
embowered fortress. As the car swept round the crescent it passed, at one
corner, the stray stall of a man selling chestnuts; and right away at the other
end of the curve, Angus could see a dim blue policeman walking slowly. These
were the only human shapes in that high suburban solitude; but he had an
irrational sense that they expressed the speechless poetry of London. He felt
as if they were figures in a story.
The little car
shot up to the right house like a bullet, and shot out its owner like a bomb
shell. He was immediately inquiring of a tall commissionaire in shining braid,
and a short porter in shirt sleeves, whether anybody or anything had been
seeking his apartments. He was assured that nobody and nothing had passed these
officials since his last inquiries; whereupon he and the slightly bewildered
Angus were shot up in the lift like a rocket, till they reached the top floor.
“Just come in for
a minute,” said the breathless Smythe. “I want to show you those Welkin
letters. Then you might run round the corner and fetch your friend.” He pressed
a button concealed in the wall, and the door opened of itself.
It opened on a
long, commodious ante-room, of which the only arresting features, ordinarily
speaking, were the rows of tall half-human mechanical figures that stood up on
both sides like tailors' dummies. Like tailors' dummies they were headless; and
like tailors' dummies they had a handsome unnecessary humpiness in the
shoulders, and a pigeon-breasted protuberance of chest; but barring this, they
were not much more like a human figure than any automatic machine at a station
that is about the human height. They had two great hooks like arms, for
carrying trays; and they were painted pea-green, or vermilion, or black for
convenience of distinction; in every other way they were only automatic
machines and nobody would have looked twice at them. On this occasion, at
least, nobody did. For between the two rows of these domestic dummies lay
something more interesting than most of the mechanics of the world. It was a
white, tattered scrap of paper scrawled with red ink; and the agile inventor
had snatched it up almost as soon as the door flew open. He handed it to Angus
without a word. The red ink on it actually was not dry, and the message ran,
“If you have been to see her today, I shall kill you.”
There was a short
silence, and then Isidore Smythe said quietly, “Would you like a little
whiskey? I rather feel as if I should.”
“Thank you; I
should like a little Flambeau,” said Angus, gloomily. “This business seems to
me to be getting rather grave. I'm going round at once to fetch him.”
“Right you are,”
said the other, with admirable cheerfulness. “Bring him round here as quick as
you can.”
But as Angus
closed the front door behind him he saw Smythe push back a button, and one of
the clockwork images glided from its place and slid along a groove in the floor
carrying a tray with syphon and decanter. There did seem something a trifle
weird about leaving the little man alone among those dead servants, who were
coming to life as the door closed.
Six steps down
from Smythe's landing the man in shirt sleeves was doing something with a pail.
Angus stopped to extract a promise, fortified with a prospective bribe, that he
would remain in that place until the return with the detective, and would keep
count of any kind of stranger coming up those stairs. Dashing down to the front
hall he then laid similar charges of vigilance on the commissionaire at the
front door, from whom he learned the simplifying circumstances that there was
no back door. Not content with this, he captured the floating policeman and
induced him to stand opposite the entrance and watch it; and finally paused an
instant for a pennyworth of chestnuts, and an inquiry as to the probable length
of the merchant's stay in the neighbourhood.
The chestnut
seller, turning up the collar of his coat, told him he should probably be moving
shortly, as he thought it was going to snow. Indeed, the evening was growing
grey and bitter, but Angus, with all his eloquence, proceeded to nail the
chestnut man to his post.
“Keep yourself
warm on your own chestnuts,” he said earnestly. “Eat up your whole stock; I'll
make it worth your while. I'll give you a sovereign if you'll wait here till I
come back, and then tell me whether any man, woman, or child has gone into that
house where the commissionaire is standing.”
He then walked
away smartly, with a last look at the besieged tower.
“I've made a ring
round that room, anyhow,” he said. “They can't all four of them be Mr. Welkin's
accomplices.”
Lucknow Mansions
were, so to speak, on a lower platform of that hill of houses, of which
Himylaya Mansions might be called the peak. Mr. Flambeau's semi-official flat
was on the ground floor, and presented in every way a marked contrast to the
American machinery and cold hotel-like luxury of the flat of the Silent
Service. Flambeau, who was a friend of Angus, received him in a rococo artistic
den behind his office, of which the ornaments were sabres, harquebuses, Eastern
curiosities, flasks of Italian wine, savage cooking-pots, a plumy Persian cat,
and a small dusty-looking Roman Catholic priest, who looked particularly out of
place.
“This is my
friend Father Brown,” said Flambeau. “I've often wanted you to meet him.
Splendid weather, this; a little cold for Southerners like me.”
“Yes, I think it
will keep clear,” said Angus, sitting down on a violet-striped Eastern ottoman.
“No,” said the
priest quietly, “it has begun to snow.”
And, indeed, as
he spoke, the first few flakes, foreseen by the man of chestnuts, began to
drift across the darkening windowpane.
“Well,” said
Angus heavily. “I'm afraid I've come on business, and rather jumpy business at
that. The fact is, Flambeau, within a stone's throw of your house is a fellow
who badly wants your help; he's perpetually being haunted and threatened by an
invisible enemy— a scoundrel whom nobody has even seen.” As Angus proceeded to
tell the whole tale of Smythe and Welkin, beginning with Laura's story, and
going on with his own, the supernatural laugh at the corner of two empty
streets, the strange distinct words spoken in an empty room, Flambeau grew more
and more vividly concerned, and the little priest seemed to be left out of it,
like a piece of furniture. When it came to the scribbled stamp-paper pasted on
the window, Flambeau rose, seeming to fill the room with his huge shoulders.
“If you don't
mind,” he said, “I think you had better tell me the rest on the nearest road to
this man's house. It strikes me, somehow, that there is no time to be lost.”
“Delighted,” said
Angus, rising also, “though he's safe enough for the present, for I've set four
men to watch the only hole to his burrow.”
They turned out
into the street, the small priest trundling after them with the docility of a
small dog. He merely said, in a cheerful way, like one making conversation,
“How quick the snow gets thick on the ground.”
As they threaded
the steep side streets already powdered with silver, Angus finished his story;
and by the time they reached the crescent with the towering flats, he had
leisure to turn his attention to the four sentinels. The chestnut seller, both
before and after receiving a sovereign, swore stubbornly that he had watched
the door and seen no visitor enter. The policeman was even more emphatic. He
said he had had experience of crooks of all kinds, in top hats and in rags; he
wasn't so green as to expect suspicious characters to look suspicious; he
looked out for anybody, and, so help him, there had been nobody. And when all
three men gathered round the gilded commissionaire, who still stood smiling
astride of the porch, the verdict was more final still.
“I've got a right
to ask any man, duke or dustman, what he wants in these flats,” said the genial
and gold-laced giant, “and I'll swear there's been nobody to ask since this
gentleman went away.”
The unimportant
Father Brown, who stood back, looking modestly at the pavement, here ventured
to say meekly, “Has nobody been up and down stairs, then, since the snow began
to fall? It began while we were all round at Flambeau's.”
“Nobody's been in
here, sir, you can take it from me,” said the official, with beaming authority.
“Then I wonder
what that is?” said the priest, and stared at the ground blankly like a fish.
The others all
looked down also; and Flambeau used a fierce exclamation and a French gesture.
For it was unquestionably true that down the middle of the entrance guarded by
the man in gold lace, actually between the arrogant, stretched legs of that
colossus, ran a stringy pattern of grey footprints stamped upon the white snow.
“God!” cried
Angus involuntarily, “the Invisible Man!”
Without another
word he turned and dashed up the stairs, with Flambeau following; but Father
Brown still stood looking about him in the snow-clad street as if he had lost
interest in his query.
Flambeau was
plainly in a mood to break down the door with his big shoulders; but the
Scotchman, with more reason, if less intuition, fumbled about on the frame of
the door till he found the invisible button; and the door swung slowly open.
It showed substantially
the same serried interior; the hall had grown darker, though it was still
struck here and there with the last crimson shafts of sunset, and one or two of
the headless machines had been moved from their places for this or that
purpose, and stood here and there about the twilit place. The green and red of
their coats were all darkened in the dusk; and their likeness to human shapes
slightly increased by their very shapelessness. But in the middle of them all,
exactly where the paper with the red ink had lain, there lay something that
looked like red ink spilt out of its bottle. But it was not red ink.
With a French
combination of reason and violence Flambeau simply said “Murder!” and, plunging
into the flat, had explored, every corner and cupboard of it in five minutes.
But if he expected to find a corpse he found none. Isidore Smythe was not in
the place, either dead or alive. After the most tearing search the two men met
each other in the outer hall, with streaming faces and staring eyes. “My friend,”
said Flambeau, talking French in his excitement, “not only is your murderer
invisible, but he makes invisible also the murdered man.”
Angus looked
round at the dim room full of dummies, and in some Celtic corner of his Scotch
soul a shudder started. One of the life-size dolls stood immediately
overshadowing the blood stain, summoned, perhaps, by the slain man an instant
before he fell. One of the high-shouldered hooks that served the thing for
arms, was a little lifted, and Angus had suddenly the horrid fancy that poor
Smythe's own iron child had struck him down. Matter had rebelled, and these
machines had killed their master. But even so, what had they done with him?
“Eaten him?” said
the nightmare at his ear; and he sickened for an instant at the idea of rent,
human remains absorbed and crushed into all that acephalous clockwork.
He recovered his
mental health by an emphatic effort, and said to Flambeau, “Well, there it is.
The poor fellow has evaporated like a cloud and left a red streak on the floor.
The tale does not belong to this world.”
“There is only
one thing to be done,” said Flambeau, “whether it belongs to this world or the
other. I must go down and talk to my friend.”
They descended,
passing the man with the pail, who again asseverated that he had let no
intruder pass, down to the commissionaire and the hovering chestnut man, who
rigidly reasserted their own watchfulness. But when Angus looked round for his
fourth confirmation he could not see it, and called out with some nervousness,
“Where is the policeman?”
“I beg your
pardon,” said Father Brown; “that is my fault. I just sent him down the road to
investigate something— that I just thought worth investigating.”
“Well, we want
him back pretty soon,” said Angus abruptly, “for the wretched man upstairs has
not only been murdered, but wiped out.”
“How?” asked the
priest.
“Father,” said
Flambeau, after a pause, “upon my soul I believe it is more in your department
than mine. No friend or foe has entered the house, but Smythe is gone, as if
stolen by the fairies. If that is not supernatural, I—”
As he spoke they
were all checked by an unusual sight; the big blue policeman came round the
corner of the crescent, running. He came straight up to Brown.
“You're right,
sir,” he panted, “they've just found poor Mr. Smythe's body in the canal down
below.”
Angus put his
hand wildly to his head. “Did he run down and drown himself?” he asked.
“He never came
down, I'll swear,” said the constable, “and he wasn't drowned either, for he
died of a great stab over the heart.”
“And yet you saw
no one enter?” said Flambeau in a grave voice.
“Let us walk down
the road a little,” said the priest.
As they reached
the other end of the crescent he observed abruptly, “Stupid of me! I forgot to
ask the policeman something. I wonder if they found a light brown sack.”
“Why a light
brown sack?” asked Angus, astonished.
“Because if it
was any other coloured sack, the case must begin over again,” said Father
Brown; “but if it was a light brown sack, why, the case is finished.”
“I am pleased to
hear it,” said Angus with hearty irony. “It hasn't begun, so far as I am
concerned.”
“You must tell us
all about it,” said Flambeau with a strange heavy simplicity, like a child.
Unconsciously
they were walking with quickening steps down the long sweep of road on the
other side of the high crescent, Father Brown leading briskly, though in
silence. At last he said with an almost touching vagueness, “Well, I'm afraid
you'll think it so prosy. We always begin at the abstract end of things, and
you can't begin this story anywhere else.
“Have you ever
noticed this—that people never answer what you say? They answer what you
mean—or what they think you mean. Suppose one lady says to another in a country
house, “Is anybody staying with you?' the lady doesn't answer “Yes; the butler,
the three footmen, the parlourmaid, and so on,' though the parlourmaid may be
in the room, or the butler behind her chair. She says “There is nobody staying
with us,' meaning nobody of the sort you mean. But suppose a doctor inquiring
into an epidemic asks, “Who is staying in the house?' then the lady will
remember the butler, the parlourmaid, and the rest. All language is used like
that; you never get a question answered literally, even when you get it
answered truly. When those four quite honest men said that no man had gone into
the Mansions, they did not really mean that no man had gone into them. They
meant no man whom they could suspect of being your man. A man did go into the
house, and did come out of it, but they never noticed him.”
“An invisible
man?” inquired Angus, raising his red eyebrows. “A mentally invisible man,”
said Father Brown.
A minute or two
after he resumed in the same unassuming voice, like a man thinking his way. “Of
course you can't think of such a man, until you do think of him. That's where
his cleverness comes in. But I came to think of him through two or three little
things in the tale Mr. Angus told us. First, there was the fact that this
Welkin went for long walks. And then there was the vast lot of stamp paper on
the window. And then, most of all, there were the two things the young lady
said—things that couldn't be true. Don't get annoyed,” he added hastily, noting
a sudden movement of the Scotchman's head; “she thought they were true. A
person can't be quite alone in a street a second before she receives a letter.
She can't be quite alone in a street when she starts reading a letter just
received. There must be somebody pretty near her; he must be mentally
invisible.”
“Why must there
be somebody near her?” asked Angus.
“Because,” said
Father Brown, “barring carrier-pigeons, somebody must have brought her the
letter.”
“Do you really
mean to say,” asked Flambeau, with energy, “that Welkin carried his rival's
letters to his lady?”
“Yes,” said the
priest. “Welkin carried his rival's letters to his lady. You see, he had to.”
“Oh, I can't
stand much more of this,” exploded Flambeau. “Who is this fellow? What does he
look like? What is the usual get-up of a mentally invisible man?”
“He is dressed
rather handsomely in red, blue and gold,” replied the priest promptly with
precision, “and in this striking, and even showy, costume he entered Himylaya
Mansions under eight human eyes; he killed Smythe in cold blood, and came down
into the street again carrying the dead body in his arms—”
“Reverend sir,”
cried Angus, standing still, “are you raving mad, or am I?”
“You are not
mad,” said Brown, “only a little unobservant. You have not noticed such a man
as this, for example.”
He took three
quick strides forward, and put his hand on the shoulder of an ordinary passing
postman who had bustled by them unnoticed under the shade of the trees.
“Nobody ever
notices postmen somehow,” he said thoughtfully; “yet they have passions like
other men, and even carry large bags where a small corpse can be stowed quite
easily.”
The postman,
instead of turning naturally, had ducked and tumbled against the garden fence.
He was a lean fair-bearded man of very ordinary appearance, but as he turned an
alarmed face over his shoulder, all three men were fixed with an almost
fiendish squint.
Flambeau went
back to his sabres, purple rugs and Persian cat, having many things to attend
to. John Turnbull Angus went back to the lady at the shop, with whom that
imprudent young man contrives to be extremely comfortable. But Father Brown
walked those snow-covered hills under the stars for many hours with a murderer,
and what they said to each other will never be known.
The Honour of
Israel Gow
A stormy evening
of olive and silver was closing in, as Father Brown, wrapped in a grey Scotch
plaid, came to the end of a grey Scotch valley and beheld the strange castle of
Glengyle. It stopped one end of the glen or hollow like a blind alley; and it looked
like the end of the world. Rising in steep roofs and spires of seagreen slate
in the manner of the old French-Scotch chateaux, it reminded an Englishman of
the sinister steeple-hats of witches in fairy tales; and the pine woods that
rocked round the green turrets looked, by comparison, as black as numberless
flocks of ravens. This note of a dreamy, almost a sleepy devilry, was no mere
fancy from the landscape. For there did rest on the place one of those clouds
of pride and madness and mysterious sorrow which lie more heavily on the noble
houses of Scotland than on any other of the children of men. For Scotland has a
double dose of the poison called heredity; the sense of blood in the
aristocrat, and the sense of doom in the Calvinist.
The priest had
snatched a day from his business at Glasgow to meet his friend Flambeau, the
amateur detective, who was at Glengyle Castle with another more formal officer
investigating the life and death of the late Earl of Glengyle. That mysterious
person was the last representative of a race whose valour, insanity, and
violent cunning had made them terrible even among the sinister nobility of
their nation in the sixteenth century. None were deeper in that labyrinthine
ambition, in chamber within chamber of that palace of lies that was built up
around Mary Queen of Scots.
The rhyme in the
country-side attested the motive and the result of their machinations candidly:
As green sap to
the simmer trees
Is red gold to
the Ogilvies.
For many
centuries there had never been a decent lord in Glengyle Castle; and with the
Victorian era one would have thought that all eccentricities were exhausted.
The last Glengyle, however, satisfied his tribal tradition by doing the only
thing that was left for him to do; he disappeared. I do not mean that he went
abroad; by all accounts he was still in the castle, if he was anywhere. But
though his name was in the church register and the big red Peerage, nobody ever
saw him under the sun.
If anyone saw him
it was a solitary man-servant, something between a groom and a gardener. He was
so deaf that the more business-like assumed him to be dumb; while the more
penetrating declared him to be half-witted. A gaunt, red-haired labourer, with
a dogged jaw and chin, but quite blank blue eyes, he went by the name of Israel
Gow, and was the one silent servant on that deserted estate. But the energy
with which he dug potatoes, and the regularity with which he disappeared into
the kitchen gave people an impression that he was providing for the meals of a
superior, and that the strange earl was still concealed in the castle. If
society needed any further proof that he was there, the servant persistently
asserted that he was not at home. One morning the provost and the minister (for
the Glengyles were Presbyterian) were summoned to the castle. There they found
that the gardener, groom and cook had added to his many professions that of an
undertaker, and had nailed up his noble master in a coffin. With how much or
how little further inquiry this odd fact was passed, did not as yet very
plainly appear; for the thing had never been legally investigated till Flambeau
had gone north two or three days before. By then the body of Lord Glengyle (if
it was the body) had lain for some time in the little churchyard on the hill.
As Father Brown
passed through the dim garden and came under the shadow of the chateau, the
clouds were thick and the whole air damp and thundery. Against the last stripe
of the green-gold sunset he saw a black human silhouette; a man in a
chimney-pot hat, with a big spade over his shoulder. The combination was
queerly suggestive of a sexton; but when Brown remembered the deaf servant who
dug potatoes, he thought it natural enough. He knew something of the Scotch
peasant; he knew the respectability which might well feel it necessary to wear
“blacks” for an official inquiry; he knew also the economy that would not lose
an hour's digging for that. Even the man's start and suspicious stare as the
priest went by were consonant enough with the vigilance and jealousy of such a
type.
The great door
was opened by Flambeau himself, who had with him a lean man with iron-grey hair
and papers in his hand: Inspector Craven from Scotland Yard. The entrance hall
was mostly stripped and empty; but the pale, sneering faces of one or two of
the wicked Ogilvies looked down out of black periwigs and blackening canvas.
Following them
into an inner room, Father Brown found that the allies had been seated at a
long oak table, of which their end was covered with scribbled papers, flanked
with whisky and cigars. Through the whole of its remaining length it was
occupied by detached objects arranged at intervals; objects about as
inexplicable as any objects could be. One looked like a small heap of
glittering broken glass. Another looked like a high heap of brown dust. A third
appeared to be a plain stick of wood.
“You seem to have
a sort of geological museum here,” he said, as he sat down, jerking his head
briefly in the direction of the brown dust and the crystalline fragments.
“Not a geological
museum,” replied Flambeau; “say a psychological museum.”
“Oh, for the
Lord's sake,” cried the police detective laughing, “don't let's begin with such
long words.”
“Don't you know
what psychology means?” asked Flambeau with friendly surprise. “Psychology
means being off your chump.”
“Still I hardly
follow,” replied the official.
“Well,” said
Flambeau, with decision, “I mean that we've only found out one thing about Lord
Glengyle. He was a maniac.”
The black
silhouette of Gow with his top hat and spade passed the window, dimly outlined
against the darkening sky. Father Brown stared passively at it and answered:
“I can understand
there must have been something odd about the man, or he wouldn't have buried
himself alive—nor been in such a hurry to bury himself dead. But what makes you
think it was lunacy?”
“Well,” said
Flambeau, “you just listen to the list of things Mr. Craven has found in the
house.”
“We must get a
candle,” said Craven, suddenly. “A storm is getting up, and it's too dark to
read.”
“Have you found
any candles,” asked Brown smiling, “among your oddities?”
Flambeau raised a
grave face, and fixed his dark eyes on his friend.
“That is curious,
too,” he said. “Twenty-five candles, and not a trace of a candlestick.”
In the rapidly
darkening room and rapidly rising wind, Brown went along the table to where a
bundle of wax candles lay among the other scrappy exhibits. As he did so he
bent accidentally over the heap of red-brown dust; and a sharp sneeze cracked
the silence.
“Hullo!” he said,
“snuff!”
He took one of
the candles, lit it carefully, came back and stuck it in the neck of the whisky
bottle. The unrestful night air, blowing through the crazy window, waved the
long flame like a banner. And on every side of the castle they could hear the
miles and miles of black pine wood seething like a black sea around a rock.
“I will read the
inventory,” began Craven gravely, picking up one of the papers, “the inventory
of what we found loose and unexplained in the castle. You are to understand
that the place generally was dismantled and neglected; but one or two rooms had
plainly been inhabited in a simple but not squalid style by somebody; somebody
who was not the servant Gow. The list is as follows:
“First item. A
very considerable hoard of precious stones, nearly all diamonds, and all of
them loose, without any setting whatever. Of course, it is natural that the
Ogilvies should have family jewels; but those are exactly the jewels that are
almost always set in particular articles of ornament. The Ogilvies would seem
to have kept theirs loose in their pockets, like coppers.
“Second item.
Heaps and heaps of loose snuff, not kept in a horn, or even a pouch, but lying
in heaps on the mantelpieces, on the sideboard, on the piano, anywhere. It
looks as if the old gentleman would not take the trouble to look in a pocket or
lift a lid.
“Third item. Here
and there about the house curious little heaps of minute pieces of metal, some
like steel springs and some in the form of microscopic wheels. As if they had
gutted some mechanical toy.
“Fourth item. The
wax candles, which have to be stuck in bottle necks because there is nothing
else to stick them in. Now I wish you to note how very much queerer all this is
than anything we anticipated. For the central riddle we are prepared; we have
all seen at a glance that there was something wrong about the last earl. We
have come here to find out whether he really lived here, whether he really died
here, whether that red-haired scarecrow who did his burying had anything to do
with his dying. But suppose the worst in all this, the most lurid or
melodramatic solution you like. Suppose the servant really killed the master,
or suppose the master isn't really dead, or suppose the master is dressed up as
the servant, or suppose the servant is buried for the master; invent what
Wilkie Collins' tragedy you like, and you still have not explained a candle
without a candlestick, or why an elderly gentleman of good family should
habitually spill snuff on the piano. The core of the tale we could imagine; it
is the fringes that are mysterious. By no stretch of fancy can the human mind
connect together snuff and diamonds and wax and loose clockwork.”
“I think I see
the connection,” said the priest. “This Glengyle was mad against the French
Revolution. He was an enthusiast for the ancien regime, and was trying to
re-enact literally the family life of the last Bourbons. He had snuff because
it was the eighteenth century luxury; wax candles, because they were the
eighteenth century lighting; the mechanical bits of iron represent the
locksmith hobby of Louis XVI; the diamonds are for the Diamond Necklace of
Marie Antoinette.”
Both the other
men were staring at him with round eyes. “What a perfectly extraordinary
notion!” cried Flambeau. “Do you really think that is the truth?”
“I am perfectly
sure it isn't,” answered Father Brown, “only you said that nobody could connect
snuff and diamonds and clockwork and candles. I give you that connection
off-hand. The real truth, I am very sure, lies deeper.”
He paused a
moment and listened to the wailing of the wind in the turrets. Then he said,
“The late Earl of Glengyle was a thief. He lived a second and darker life as a
desperate housebreaker. He did not have any candlesticks because he only used
these candles cut short in the little lantern he carried. The snuff he employed
as the fiercest French criminals have used pepper: to fling it suddenly in
dense masses in the face of a captor or pursuer. But the final proof is in the
curious coincidence of the diamonds and the small steel wheels. Surely that
makes everything plain to you? Diamonds and small steel wheels are the only two
instruments with which you can cut out a pane of glass.”
The bough of a
broken pine tree lashed heavily in the blast against the windowpane behind
them, as if in parody of a burglar, but they did not turn round. Their eyes
were fastened on Father Brown.
“Diamonds and
small wheels,” repeated Craven ruminating. “Is that all that makes you think it
the true explanation?”
“I don't think it
the true explanation,” replied the priest placidly; “but you said that nobody
could connect the four things. The true tale, of course, is something much more
humdrum. Glengyle had found, or thought he had found, precious stones on his
estate. Somebody had bamboozled him with those loose brilliants, saying they
were found in the castle caverns. The little wheels are some diamond-cutting
affair. He had to do the thing very roughly and in a small way, with the help
of a few shepherds or rude fellows on these hills. Snuff is the one great
luxury of such Scotch shepherds; it's the one thing with which you can bribe
them. They didn't have candlesticks because they didn't want them; they held
the candles in their hands when they explored the caves.”
“Is that all?”
asked Flambeau after a long pause. “Have we got to the dull truth at last?”
“Oh, no,” said
Father Brown.
As the wind died
in the most distant pine woods with a long hoot as of mockery Father Brown,
with an utterly impassive face, went on:
“I only suggested
that because you said one could not plausibly connect snuff with clockwork or
candles with bright stones. Ten false philosophies will fit the universe; ten
false theories will fit Glengyle Castle. But we want the real explanation of
the castle and the universe. But are there no other exhibits?”
Craven laughed,
and Flambeau rose smiling to his feet and strolled down the long table.
“Items five, six,
seven, etc.,” he said, “and certainly more varied than instructive. A curious
collection, not of lead pencils, but of the lead out of lead pencils. A
senseless stick of bamboo, with the top rather splintered. It might be the
instrument of the crime. Only, there isn't any crime. The only other things are
a few old missals and little Catholic pictures, which the Ogilvies kept, I
suppose, from the Middle Ages—their family pride being stronger than their
Puritanism. We only put them in the museum because they seem curiously cut
about and defaced.”
The heady tempest
without drove a dreadful wrack of clouds across Glengyle and threw the long
room into darkness as Father Brown picked up the little illuminated pages to
examine them. He spoke before the drift of darkness had passed; but it was the
voice of an utterly new man.
“Mr. Craven,”
said he, talking like a man ten years younger, “you have got a legal warrant,
haven't you, to go up and examine that grave? The sooner we do it the better,
and get to the bottom of this horrible affair. If I were you I should start
now.”
“Now,” repeated
the astonished detective, “and why now?”
“Because this is
serious,” answered Brown; “this is not spilt snuff or loose pebbles, that might
be there for a hundred reasons. There is only one reason I know of for this
being done; and the reason goes down to the roots of the world. These religious
pictures are not just dirtied or torn or scrawled over, which might be done in
idleness or bigotry, by children or by Protestants. These have been treated
very carefully— and very queerly. In every place where the great ornamented
name of God comes in the old illuminations it has been elaborately taken out.
The only other thing that has been removed is the halo round the head of the
Child Jesus. Therefore, I say, let us get our warrant and our spade and our
hatchet, and go up and break open that coffin.”
“What do you
mean?” demanded the London officer.
“I mean,”
answered the little priest, and his voice seemed to rise slightly in the roar
of the gale. “I mean that the great devil of the universe may be sitting on the
top tower of this castle at this moment, as big as a hundred elephants, and
roaring like the Apocalypse. There is black magic somewhere at the bottom of
this.”
“Black magic,”
repeated Flambeau in a low voice, for he was too enlightened a man not to know
of such things; “but what can these other things mean?”
“Oh, something
damnable, I suppose,” replied Brown impatiently. “How should I know? How can I
guess all their mazes down below? Perhaps you can make a torture out of snuff
and bamboo. Perhaps lunatics lust after wax and steel filings. Perhaps there is
a maddening drug made of lead pencils! Our shortest cut to the mystery is up
the hill to the grave.”
His comrades
hardly knew that they had obeyed and followed him till a blast of the night
wind nearly flung them on their faces in the garden. Nevertheless they had
obeyed him like automata; for Craven found a hatchet in his hand, and the
warrant in his pocket; Flambeau was carrying the heavy spade of the strange
gardener; Father Brown was carrying the little gilt book from which had been
torn the name of God.
The path up the
hill to the churchyard was crooked but short; only under that stress of wind it
seemed laborious and long. Far as the eye could see, farther and farther as
they mounted the slope, were seas beyond seas of pines, now all aslope one way under
the wind. And that universal gesture seemed as vain as it was vast, as vain as
if that wind were whistling about some unpeopled and purposeless planet.
Through all that infinite growth of grey-blue forests sang, shrill and high,
that ancient sorrow that is in the heart of all heathen things. One could fancy
that the voices from the under world of unfathomable foliage were cries of the
lost and wandering pagan gods: gods who had gone roaming in that irrational
forest, and who will never find their way back to heaven.
“You see,” said
Father Brown in low but easy tone, “Scotch people before Scotland existed were
a curious lot. In fact, they're a curious lot still. But in the prehistoric
times I fancy they really worshipped demons. That,” he added genially, “is why
they jumped at the Puritan theology.”
“My friend,” said
Flambeau, turning in a kind of fury, “what does all that snuff mean?”
“My friend,”
replied Brown, with equal seriousness, “there is one mark of all genuine
religions: materialism. Now, devil-worship is a perfectly genuine religion.”
They had come up
on the grassy scalp of the hill, one of the few bald spots that stood clear of
the crashing and roaring pine forest. A mean enclosure, partly timber and
partly wire, rattled in the tempest to tell them the border of the graveyard.
But by the time Inspector Craven had come to the corner of the grave, and
Flambeau had planted his spade point downwards and leaned on it, they were both
almost as shaken as the shaky wood and wire. At the foot of the grave grew
great tall thistles, grey and silver in their decay. Once or twice, when a ball
of thistledown broke under the breeze and flew past him, Craven jumped slightly
as if it had been an arrow.
Flambeau drove
the blade of his spade through the whistling grass into the wet clay below.
Then he seemed to stop and lean on it as on a staff.
“Go on,” said the
priest very gently. “We are only trying to find the truth. What are you afraid
of?”
“I am afraid of
finding it,” said Flambeau.
The London
detective spoke suddenly in a high crowing voice that was meant to be
conversational and cheery. “I wonder why he really did hide himself like that.
Something nasty, I suppose; was he a leper?”
“Something worse
than that,” said Flambeau.
“And what do you
imagine,” asked the other, “would be worse than a leper?”
“I don't imagine
it,” said Flambeau.
He dug for some
dreadful minutes in silence, and then said in a choked voice, “I'm afraid of
his not being the right shape.”
“Nor was that
piece of paper, you know,” said Father Brown quietly, “and we survived even
that piece of paper.”
Flambeau dug on
with a blind energy. But the tempest had shouldered away the choking grey
clouds that clung to the hills like smoke and revealed grey fields of faint
starlight before he cleared the shape of a rude timber coffin, and somehow
tipped it up upon the turf. Craven stepped forward with his axe; a thistle-top
touched him, and he flinched. Then he took a firmer stride, and hacked and
wrenched with an energy like Flambeau's till the lid was torn off, and all that
was there lay glimmering in the grey starlight.
“Bones,” said
Craven; and then he added, “but it is a man,” as if that were something
unexpected.
“Is he,” asked
Flambeau in a voice that went oddly up and down, “is he all right?”
“Seems so,” said
the officer huskily, bending over the obscure and decaying skeleton in the box.
“Wait a minute.”
A vast heave went
over Flambeau's huge figure. “And now I come to think of it,” he cried, “why in
the name of madness shouldn't he be all right? What is it gets hold of a man on
these cursed cold mountains? I think it's the black, brainless repetition; all
these forests, and over all an ancient horror of unconsciousness. It's like the
dream of an atheist. Pine-trees and more pine-trees and millions more pine-trees—”
“God!” cried the
man by the coffin, “but he hasn't got a head.”
While the others
stood rigid the priest, for the first time, showed a leap of startled concern.
“No head!” he
repeated. “No head?” as if he had almost expected some other deficiency.
Half-witted
visions of a headless baby born to Glengyle, of a headless youth hiding himself
in the castle, of a headless man pacing those ancient halls or that gorgeous
garden, passed in panorama through their minds. But even in that stiffened
instant the tale took no root in them and seemed to have no reason in it. They
stood listening to the loud woods and the shrieking sky quite foolishly, like
exhausted animals. Thought seemed to be something enormous that had suddenly
slipped out of their grasp.
“There are three
headless men,” said Father Brown, “standing round this open grave.”
The pale
detective from London opened his mouth to speak, and left it open like a yokel,
while a long scream of wind tore the sky; then he looked at the axe in his
hands as if it did not belong to him, and dropped it.
“Father,” said
Flambeau in that infantile and heavy voice he used very seldom, “what are we to
do?”
His friend's
reply came with the pent promptitude of a gun going off.
“Sleep!” cried
Father Brown. “Sleep. We have come to the end of the ways. Do you know what
sleep is? Do you know that every man who sleeps believes in God? It is a
sacrament; for it is an act of faith and it is a food. And we need a sacrament,
if only a natural one. Something has fallen on us that falls very seldom on
men; perhaps the worst thing that can fall on them.”
Craven's parted
lips came together to say, “What do you mean?”
The priest had
turned his face to the castle as he answered: “We have found the truth; and the
truth makes no sense.”
He went down the
path in front of them with a plunging and reckless step very rare with him, and
when they reached the castle again he threw himself upon sleep with the
simplicity of a dog.
Despite his
mystic praise of slumber, Father Brown was up earlier than anyone else except
the silent gardener; and was found smoking a big pipe and watching that expert
at his speechless labours in the kitchen garden. Towards daybreak the rocking
storm had ended in roaring rains, and the day came with a curious freshness.
The gardener seemed even to have been conversing, but at sight of the
detectives he planted his spade sullenly in a bed and, saying something about
his breakfast, shifted along the lines of cabbages and shut himself in the
kitchen. “He's a valuable man, that,” said Father Brown. “He does the potatoes
amazingly. Still,” he added, with a dispassionate charity, “he has his faults;
which of us hasn't? He doesn't dig this bank quite regularly. There, for
instance,” and he stamped suddenly on one spot. “I'm really very doubtful about
that potato.”
“And why?” asked
Craven, amused with the little man's hobby.
“I'm doubtful
about it,” said the other, “because old Gow was doubtful about it himself. He
put his spade in methodically in every place but just this. There must be a
mighty fine potato just here.”
Flambeau pulled
up the spade and impetuously drove it into the place. He turned up, under a
load of soil, something that did not look like a potato, but rather like a
monstrous, over-domed mushroom. But it struck the spade with a cold click; it
rolled over like a ball, and grinned up at them.
“The Earl of
Glengyle,” said Brown sadly, and looked down heavily at the skull.
Then, after a
momentary meditation, he plucked the spade from Flambeau, and, saying “We must
hide it again,” clamped the skull down in the earth. Then he leaned his little
body and huge head on the great handle of the spade, that stood up stiffly in
the earth, and his eyes were empty and his forehead full of wrinkles. “If one
could only conceive,” he muttered, “the meaning of this last monstrosity.” And
leaning on the large spade handle, he buried his brows in his hands, as men do
in church.
All the corners
of the sky were brightening into blue and silver; the birds were chattering in
the tiny garden trees; so loud it seemed as if the trees themselves were
talking. But the three men were silent enough.
“Well, I give it
all up,” said Flambeau at last boisterously. “My brain and this world don't fit
each other; and there's an end of it. Snuff, spoilt Prayer Books, and the
insides of musical boxes—what—”
Brown threw up
his bothered brow and rapped on the spade handle with an intolerance quite
unusual with him. “Oh, tut, tut, tut, tut!” he cried. “All that is as plain as
a pikestaff. I understood the snuff and clockwork, and so on, when I first
opened my eyes this morning. And since then I've had it out with old Gow, the
gardener, who is neither so deaf nor so stupid as he pretends. There's nothing
amiss about the loose items. I was wrong about the torn mass-book, too; there's
no harm in that. But it's this last business. Desecrating graves and stealing
dead men's heads— surely there's harm in that? Surely there's black magic still
in that? That doesn't fit in to the quite simple story of the snuff and the candles.”
And, striding about again, he smoked moodily.
“My friend,” said
Flambeau, with a grim humour, “you must be careful with me and remember I was
once a criminal. The great advantage of that estate was that I always made up
the story myself, and acted it as quick as I chose. This detective business of
waiting about is too much for my French impatience. All my life, for good or
evil, I have done things at the instant; I always fought duels the next
morning; I always paid bills on the nail; I never even put off a visit to the
dentist—”
Father Brown's
pipe fell out of his mouth and broke into three pieces on the gravel path. He
stood rolling his eyes, the exact picture of an idiot. “Lord, what a turnip I
am!” he kept saying. “Lord, what a turnip!” Then, in a somewhat groggy kind of
way, he began to laugh.
“The dentist!” he
repeated. “Six hours in the spiritual abyss, and all because I never thought of
the dentist! Such a simple, such a beautiful and peaceful thought! Friends, we
have passed a night in hell; but now the sun is risen, the birds are singing,
and the radiant form of the dentist consoles the world.”
“I will get some
sense out of this,” cried Flambeau, striding forward, “if I use the tortures of
the Inquisition.”
Father Brown
repressed what appeared to be a momentary disposition to dance on the now
sunlit lawn and cried quite piteously, like a child, “Oh, let me be silly a
little. You don't know how unhappy I have been. And now I know that there has
been no deep sin in this business at all. Only a little lunacy, perhaps—and who
minds that?”
He spun round
once more, then faced them with gravity.
“This is not a
story of crime,” he said; “rather it is the story of a strange and crooked
honesty. We are dealing with the one man on earth, perhaps, who has taken no
more than his due. It is a study in the savage living logic that has been the
religion of this race.
“That old local
rhyme about the house of Glengyle—
As green sap to
the simmer trees
Is red gold to
the Ogilvies— was literal as well as metaphorical. It did not merely mean that
the Glengyles sought for wealth; it was also true that they literally gathered
gold; they had a huge collection of ornaments and utensils in that metal. They
were, in fact, misers whose mania took that turn. In the light of that fact,
run through all the things we found in the castle. Diamonds without their gold
rings; candles without their gold candlesticks; snuff without the gold
snuff-boxes; pencil-leads without the gold pencil-cases; a walking stick
without its gold top; clockwork without the gold clocks— or rather watches.
And, mad as it sounds, because the halos and the name of God in the old missals
were of real gold; these also were taken away.”
The garden seemed
to brighten, the grass to grow gayer in the strengthening sun, as the crazy
truth was told. Flambeau lit a cigarette as his friend went on.
“Were taken
away,” continued Father Brown; “were taken away— but not stolen. Thieves would
never have left this mystery. Thieves would have taken the gold snuff-boxes,
snuff and all; the gold pencil-cases, lead and all. We have to deal with a man
with a peculiar conscience, but certainly a conscience. I found that mad
moralist this morning in the kitchen garden yonder, and I heard the whole
story.
“The late
Archibald Ogilvie was the nearest approach to a good man ever born at Glengyle.
But his bitter virtue took the turn of the misanthrope; he moped over the
dishonesty of his ancestors, from which, somehow, he generalised a dishonesty
of all men. More especially he distrusted philanthropy or free-giving; and he
swore if he could find one man who took his exact rights he should have all the
gold of Glengyle. Having delivered this defiance to humanity he shut himself
up, without the smallest expectation of its being answered. One day, however, a
deaf and seemingly senseless lad from a distant village brought him a belated
telegram; and Glengyle, in his acrid pleasantry, gave him a new farthing. At
least he thought he had done so, but when he turned over his change he found
the new farthing still there and a sovereign gone. The accident offered him
vistas of sneering speculation. Either way, the boy would show the greasy greed
of the species. Either he would vanish, a thief stealing a coin; or he would
sneak back with it virtuously, a snob seeking a reward. In the middle of that
night Lord Glengyle was knocked up out of his bed— for he lived alone—and
forced to open the door to the deaf idiot. The idiot brought with him, not the
sovereign, but exactly nineteen shillings and eleven-pence three-farthings in
change.
“Then the wild
exactitude of this action took hold of the mad lord's brain like fire. He swore
he was Diogenes, that had long sought an honest man, and at last had found one.
He made a new will, which I have seen. He took the literal youth into his huge,
neglected house, and trained him up as his solitary servant and—after an odd
manner—his heir. And whatever that queer creature understands, he understood
absolutely his lord's two fixed ideas: first, that the letter of right is
everything; and second, that he himself was to have the gold of Glengyle. So
far, that is all; and that is simple. He has stripped the house of gold, and
taken not a grain that was not gold; not so much as a grain of snuff. He lifted
the gold leaf off an old illumination, fully satisfied that he left the rest
unspoilt. All that I understood; but I could not understand this skull
business. I was really uneasy about that human head buried among the potatoes.
It distressed me—till Flambeau said the word.
“It will be all
right. He will put the skull back in the grave, when he has taken the gold out
of the tooth.”
And, indeed, when
Flambeau crossed the hill that morning, he saw that strange being, the just
miser, digging at the desecrated grave, the plaid round his throat thrashing
out in the mountain wind; the sober top hat on his head.
The Wrong Shape
Certain of the
great roads going north out of London continue far into the country a sort of
attenuated and interrupted spectre of a street, with great gaps in the
building, but preserving the line. Here will be a group of shops, followed by a
fenced field or paddock, and then a famous public-house, and then perhaps a
market garden or a nursery garden, and then one large private house, and then
another field and another inn, and so on. If anyone walks along one of these
roads he will pass a house which will probably catch his eye, though he may not
be able to explain its attraction. It is a long, low house, running parallel
with the road, painted mostly white and pale green, with a veranda and
sun-blinds, and porches capped with those quaint sort of cupolas like wooden
umbrellas that one sees in some old-fashioned houses. In fact, it is an
old-fashioned house, very English and very suburban in the good old wealthy
Clapham sense. And yet the house has a look of having been built chiefly for
the hot weather. Looking at its white paint and sun-blinds one thinks vaguely
of pugarees and even of palm trees. I cannot trace the feeling to its root;
perhaps the place was built by an Anglo-Indian.
Anyone passing
this house, I say, would be namelessly fascinated by it; would feel that it was
a place about which some story was to be told. And he would have been right, as
you shall shortly hear. For this is the story—the story of the strange things
that did really happen in it in the Whitsuntide of the year 18—:
Anyone passing
the house on the Thursday before WhitSunday at about half-past four p. m. would
have seen the front door open, and Father Brown, of the small church of St.
Mungo, come out smoking a large pipe in company with a very tall French friend
of his called Flambeau, who was smoking a very small cigarette. These persons
may or may not be of interest to the reader, but the truth is that they were
not the only interesting things that were displayed when the front door of the
white-and-green house was opened. There are further peculiarities about this
house, which must be described to start with, not only that the reader may
understand this tragic tale, but also that he may realise what it was that the
opening of the door revealed.
The whole house
was built upon the plan of a T, but a T with a very long cross piece and a very
short tail piece. The long cross piece was the frontage that ran along in face
of the street, with the front door in the middle; it was two stories high, and
contained nearly all the important rooms. The short tail piece, which ran out
at the back immediately opposite the front door, was one story high, and
consisted only of two long rooms, the one leading into the other. The first of
these two rooms was the study in which the celebrated Mr. Quinton wrote his
wild Oriental poems and romances. The farther room was a glass conservatory
full of tropical blossoms of quite unique and almost monstrous beauty, and on
such afternoons as these glowing with gorgeous sunlight. Thus when the hall
door was open, many a passer-by literally stopped to stare and gasp; for he
looked down a perspective of rich apartments to something really like a
transformation scene in a fairy play: purple clouds and golden suns and crimson
stars that were at once scorchingly vivid and yet transparent and far away.
Leonard Quinton,
the poet, had himself most carefully arranged this effect; and it is doubtful
whether he so perfectly expressed his personality in any of his poems. For he
was a man who drank and bathed in colours, who indulged his lust for colour
somewhat to the neglect of form—even of good form. This it was that had turned
his genius so wholly to eastern art and imagery; to those bewildering carpets
or blinding embroideries in which all the colours seem fallen into a fortunate
chaos, having nothing to typify or to teach. He had attempted, not perhaps with
complete artistic success, but with acknowledged imagination and invention, to
compose epics and love stories reflecting the riot of violent and even cruel
colour; tales of tropical heavens of burning gold or blood-red copper; of
eastern heroes who rode with twelve-turbaned mitres upon elephants painted
purple or peacock green; of gigantic jewels that a hundred negroes could not
carry, but which burned with ancient and strange-hued fires.
In short (to put
the matter from the more common point of view), he dealt much in eastern
heavens, rather worse than most western hells; in eastern monarchs, whom we
might possibly call maniacs; and in eastern jewels which a Bond Street jeweller
(if the hundred staggering negroes brought them into his shop) might possibly
not regard as genuine. Quinton was a genius, if a morbid one; and even his
morbidity appeared more in his life than in his work. In temperament he was
weak and waspish, and his health had suffered heavily from oriental experiments
with opium. His wife—a handsome, hard-working, and, indeed, over-worked woman
objected to the opium, but objected much more to a live Indian hermit in white
and yellow robes, whom her husband insisted on entertaining for months
together, a Virgil to guide his spirit through the heavens and the hells of the
east.
It was out of
this artistic household that Father Brown and his friend stepped on to the
door-step; and to judge from their faces, they stepped out of it with much
relief. Flambeau had known Quinton in wild student days in Paris, and they had
renewed the acquaintance for a week-end; but apart from Flambeau's more
responsible developments of late, he did not get on well with the poet now. Choking
oneself with opium and writing little erotic verses on vellum was not his
notion of how a gentleman should go to the devil. As the two paused on the
door-step, before taking a turn in the garden, the front garden gate was thrown
open with violence, and a young man with a billycock hat on the back of his
head tumbled up the steps in his eagerness. He was a dissipated-looking youth
with a gorgeous red necktie all awry, as if he had slept in it, and he kept
fidgeting and lashing about with one of those little jointed canes.
“I say,” he said
breathlessly, “I want to see old Quinton. I must see him. Has he gone?”
“Mr. Quinton is
in, I believe,” said Father Brown, cleaning his pipe, “but I do not know if you
can see him. The doctor is with him at present.”
The young man,
who seemed not to be perfectly sober, stumbled into the hall; and at the same
moment the doctor came out of Quinton's study, shutting the door and beginning
to put on his gloves.
“See Mr.
Quinton?” said the doctor coolly. “No, I'm afraid you can't. In fact, you
mustn't on any account. Nobody must see him; I've just given him his sleeping
draught.”
“No, but look
here, old chap,” said the youth in the red tie, trying affectionately to
capture the doctor by the lapels of his coat. “Look here. I'm simply sewn up, I
tell you. I—”
“It's no good,
Mr. Atkinson,” said the doctor, forcing him to fall back; “when you can alter
the effects of a drug I'll alter my decision,” and, settling on his hat, he
stepped out into the sunlight with the other two. He was a bull-necked,
good-tempered little man with a small moustache, inexpressibly ordinary, yet
giving an impression of capacity.
The young man in
the billycock, who did not seem to be gifted with any tact in dealing with
people beyond the general idea of clutching hold of their coats, stood outside
the door, as dazed as if he had been thrown out bodily, and silently watched
the other three walk away together through the garden.
“That was a
sound, spanking lie I told just now,” remarked the medical man, laughing. “In
point of fact, poor Quinton doesn't have his sleeping draught for nearly half
an hour. But I'm not going to have him bothered with that little beast, who
only wants to borrow money that he wouldn't pay back if he could. He's a dirty
little scamp, though he is Mrs. Quinton's brother, and she's as fine a woman as
ever walked.”
“Yes,” said
Father Brown. “She's a good woman.”
“So I propose to
hang about the garden till the creature has cleared off,” went on the doctor,
“and then I'll go in to Quinton with the medicine. Atkinson can't get in,
because I locked the door.”
“In that case,
Dr. Harris,” said Flambeau, “we might as well walk round at the back by the end
of the conservatory. There's no entrance to it that way, but it's worth seeing,
even from the outside.”
“Yes, and I might
get a squint at my patient,” laughed the doctor, “for he prefers to lie on an
ottoman right at the end of the conservatory amid all those blood-red
poinsettias; it would give me the creeps. But what are you doing?”
Father Brown had
stopped for a moment, and picked up out of the long grass, where it had almost
been wholly hidden, a queer, crooked Oriental knife, inlaid exquisitely in
coloured stones and metals.
“What is this?”
asked Father Brown, regarding it with some disfavour.
“Oh, Quinton's, I
suppose,” said Dr. Harris carelessly; “he has all sorts of Chinese knickknacks
about the place. Or perhaps it belongs to that mild Hindoo of his whom he keeps
on a string.”
“What Hindoo?”
asked Father Brown, still staring at the dagger in his hand.
“Oh, some Indian
conjuror,” said the doctor lightly; “a fraud, of course.”
“You don't
believe in magic?” asked Father Brown, without looking up.
“O crickey!
magic!” said the doctor.
“It's very
beautiful,” said the priest in a low, dreaming voice; “the colours are very
beautiful. But it's the wrong shape.”
“What for?” asked
Flambeau, staring.
“For anything.
It's the wrong shape in the abstract. Don't you ever feel that about Eastern
art? The colours are intoxicatingly lovely; but the shapes are mean and
bad—deliberately mean and bad. I have seen wicked things in a Turkey carpet.”
“Mon Dieu!” cried
Flambeau, laughing.
“They are letters
and symbols in a language I don't know; but I know they stand for evil words,”
went on the priest, his voice growing lower and lower. “The lines go wrong on
purpose—like serpents doubling to escape.”
“What the devil
are you talking about?” said the doctor with a loud laugh.
Flambeau spoke
quietly to him in answer. “The Father sometimes gets this mystic's cloud on
him,” he said; “but I give you fair warning that I have never known him to have
it except when there was some evil quite near.”
“Oh, rats!” said
the scientist.
“Why, look at
it,” cried Father Brown, holding out the crooked knife at arm's length, as if
it were some glittering snake. “Don't you see it is the wrong shape? Don't you
see that it has no hearty and plain purpose? It does not point like a spear. It
does not sweep like a scythe. It does not look like a weapon. It looks like an
instrument of torture.”
“Well, as you
don't seem to like it,” said the jolly Harris, “it had better be taken back to
its owner. Haven't we come to the end of this confounded conservatory yet? This
house is the wrong shape, if you like.”
“You don't
understand,” said Father Brown, shaking his head. “The shape of this house is
quaint—it is even laughable. But there is nothing wrong about it.”
As they spoke
they came round the curve of glass that ended the conservatory, an
uninterrupted curve, for there was neither door nor window by which to enter at
that end. The glass, however, was clear, and the sun still bright, though
beginning to set; and they could see not only the flamboyant blossoms inside,
but the frail figure of the poet in a brown velvet coat lying languidly on the
sofa, having, apparently, fallen half asleep over a book. He was a pale, slight
man, with loose, chestnut hair and a fringe of beard that was the paradox of
his face, for the beard made him look less manly. These traits were well known
to all three of them; but even had it not been so, it may be doubted whether
they would have looked at Quinton just then. Their eyes were riveted on another
object.
Exactly in their
path, immediately outside the round end of the glass building, was standing a
tall man, whose drapery fell to his feet in faultless white, and whose bare,
brown skull, face, and neck gleamed in the setting sun like splendid bronze. He
was looking through the glass at the sleeper, and he was more motionless than a
mountain.
“Who is that?”
cried Father Brown, stepping back with a hissing intake of his breath.
“Oh, it is only
that Hindoo humbug,” growled Harris; “but I don't know what the deuce he's
doing here.”
“It looks like
hypnotism,” said Flambeau, biting his black moustache.
“Why are you
unmedical fellows always talking bosh about hypnotism?” cried the doctor. “It
looks a deal more like burglary.”
“Well, we will
speak to it, at any rate,” said Flambeau, who was always for action. One long
stride took him to the place where the Indian stood. Bowing from his great
height, which overtopped even the Oriental's, he said with placid impudence:
“Good evening, sir.
Do you want anything?”
Quite slowly,
like a great ship turning into a harbour, the great yellow face turned, and
looked at last over its white shoulder. They were startled to see that its
yellow eyelids were quite sealed, as in sleep. “Thank you,” said the face in
excellent English. “I want nothing.” Then, half opening the lids, so as to show
a slit of opalescent eyeball, he repeated, “I want nothing.” Then he opened his
eyes wide with a startling stare, said, “I want nothing,” and went rustling
away into the rapidly darkening garden.
“The Christian is
more modest,” muttered Father Brown; “he wants something.”
“What on earth
was he doing?” asked Flambeau, knitting his black brows and lowering his voice.
“I should like to
talk to you later,” said Father Brown.
The sunlight was
still a reality, but it was the red light of evening, and the bulk of the
garden trees and bushes grew blacker and blacker against it. They turned round
the end of the conservatory, and walked in silence down the other side to get
round to the front door. As they went they seemed to wake something, as one
startles a bird, in the deeper corner between the study and the main building;
and again they saw the white-robed fakir slide out of the shadow, and slip
round towards the front door. To their surprise, however, he had not been
alone. They found themselves abruptly pulled up and forced to banish their
bewilderment by the appearance of Mrs. Quinton, with her heavy golden hair and
square pale face, advancing on them out of the twilight. She looked a little
stern, but was entirely courteous.
“Good evening,
Dr. Harris,” was all she said.
“Good evening,
Mrs. Quinton,” said the little doctor heartily. “I am just going to give your
husband his sleeping draught.”
“Yes,” she said
in a clear voice. “I think it is quite time.” And she smiled at them, and went
sweeping into the house.
“That woman's
over-driven,” said Father Brown; “that's the kind of woman that does her duty
for twenty years, and then does something dreadful.”
The little doctor
looked at him for the first time with an eye of interest. “Did you ever study
medicine?” he asked.
“You have to know
something of the mind as well as the body,” answered the priest; “we have to
know something of the body as well as the mind.”
“Well,” said the
doctor, “I think I'll go and give Quinton his stuff.”
They had turned
the corner of the front facade, and were approaching the front doorway. As they
turned into it they saw the man in the white robe for the third time. He came
so straight towards the front door that it seemed quite incredible that he had
not just come out of the study opposite to it. Yet they knew that the study
door was locked.
Father Brown and
Flambeau, however, kept this weird contradiction to themselves, and Dr. Harris
was not a man to waste his thoughts on the impossible. He permitted the
omnipresent Asiatic to make his exit, and then stepped briskly into the hall.
There he found a figure which he had already forgotten. The inane Atkinson was
still hanging about, humming and poking things with his knobby cane. The
doctor's face had a spasm of disgust and decision, and he whispered rapidly to
his companion: “I must lock the door again, or this rat will get in. But I
shall be out again in two minutes.”
He rapidly
unlocked the door and locked it again behind him, just balking a blundering charge
from the young man in the billycock. The young man threw himself impatiently on
a hall chair. Flambeau looked at a Persian illumination on the wall; Father
Brown, who seemed in a sort of daze, dully eyed the door. In about four minutes
the door was opened again. Atkinson was quicker this time. He sprang forward,
held the door open for an instant, and called out: “Oh, I say, Quinton, I
want—”
From the other
end of the study came the clear voice of Quinton, in something between a yawn
and a yell of weary laughter.
“Oh, I know what
you want. Take it, and leave me in peace. I'm writing a song about peacocks.”
Before the door
closed half a sovereign came flying through the aperture; and Atkinson,
stumbling forward, caught it with singular dexterity.
“So that's
settled,” said the doctor, and, locking the door savagely, he led the way out
into the garden.
“Poor Leonard can
get a little peace now,” he added to Father Brown; “he's locked in all by
himself for an hour or two.”
“Yes,” answered
the priest; “and his voice sounded jolly enough when we left him.” Then he
looked gravely round the garden, and saw the loose figure of Atkinson standing
and jingling the half-sovereign in his pocket, and beyond, in the purple
twilight, the figure of the Indian sitting bolt upright upon a bank of grass
with his face turned towards the setting sun. Then he said abruptly: “Where is
Mrs. Quinton!”
“She has gone up
to her room,” said the doctor. “That is her shadow on the blind.”
Father Brown
looked up, and frowningly scrutinised a dark outline at the gas-lit window.
“Yes,” he said,
“that is her shadow,” and he walked a yard or two and threw himself upon a
garden seat.
Flambeau sat down
beside him; but the doctor was one of those energetic people who live naturally
on their legs. He walked away, smoking, into the twilight, and the two friends
were left together.
“My father,” said
Flambeau in French, “what is the matter with you?”
Father Brown was
silent and motionless for half a minute, then he said: “Superstition is
irreligious, but there is something in the air of this place. I think it's that
Indian—at least, partly.”
He sank into
silence, and watched the distant outline of the Indian, who still sat rigid as
if in prayer. At first sight he seemed motionless, but as Father Brown watched
him he saw that the man swayed ever so slightly with a rhythmic movement, just
as the dark tree-tops swayed ever so slightly in the wind that was creeping up
the dim garden paths and shuffling the fallen leaves a little.
The landscape was
growing rapidly dark, as if for a storm, but they could still see all the
figures in their various places. Atkinson was leaning against a tree with a
listless face; Quinton's wife was still at her window; the doctor had gone
strolling round the end of the conservatory; they could see his cigar like a
will-o'-the-wisp; and the fakir still sat rigid and yet rocking, while the
trees above him began to rock and almost to roar. Storm was certainly coming.
“When that Indian
spoke to us,” went on Brown in a conversational undertone, “I had a sort of
vision, a vision of him and all his universe. Yet he only said the same thing
three times. When first he said “I want nothing,' it meant only that he was
impenetrable, that Asia does not give itself away. Then he said again, “I want
nothing,' and I knew that he meant that he was sufficient to himself, like a
cosmos, that he needed no God, neither admitted any sins. And when he said the
third time, “I want nothing,' he said it with blazing eyes. And I knew that he
meant literally what he said; that nothing was his desire and his home; that he
was weary for nothing as for wine; that annihilation, the mere destruction of
everything or anything—”
Two drops of rain
fell; and for some reason Flambeau started and looked up, as if they had stung
him. And the same instant the doctor down by the end of the conservatory began
running towards them, calling out something as he ran.
As he came among
them like a bombshell the restless Atkinson happened to be taking a turn nearer
to the house front; and the doctor clutched him by the collar in a convulsive
grip. “Foul play!” he cried; “what have you been doing to him, you dog?”
The priest had
sprung erect, and had the voice of steel of a soldier in command.
“No fighting,” he
cried coolly; “we are enough to hold anyone we want to. What is the matter,
doctor?”
“Things are not
right with Quinton,” said the doctor, quite white. “I could just see him
through the glass, and I don't like the way he's lying. It's not as I left him,
anyhow.”
“Let us go in to
him,” said Father Brown shortly. “You can leave Mr. Atkinson alone. I have had
him in sight since we heard Quinton's voice.”
“I will stop here
and watch him,” said Flambeau hurriedly. “You go in and see.”
The doctor and
the priest flew to the study door, unlocked it, and fell into the room. In
doing so they nearly fell over the large mahogany table in the centre at which
the poet usually wrote; for the place was lit only by a small fire kept for the
invalid. In the middle of this table lay a single sheet of paper, evidently
left there on purpose. The doctor snatched it up, glanced at it, handed it to
Father Brown, and crying, “Good God, look at that!” plunged toward the glass
room beyond, where the terrible tropic flowers still seemed to keep a crimson
memory of the sunset.
Father Brown read
the words three times before he put down the paper. The words were: “I die by
my own hand; yet I die murdered!” They were in the quite inimitable, not to say
illegible, handwriting of Leonard Quinton.
Then Father
Brown, still keeping the paper in his hand, strode towards the conservatory,
only to meet his medical friend coming back with a face of assurance and
collapse. “He's done it,” said Harris.
They went
together through the gorgeous unnatural beauty of cactus and azalea and found
Leonard Quinton, poet and romancer, with his head hanging downward off his
ottoman and his red curls sweeping the ground. Into his left side was thrust
the queer dagger that they had picked up in the garden, and his limp hand still
rested on the hilt.
Outside the storm
had come at one stride, like the night in Coleridge, and garden and glass roof
were darkened with driving rain. Father Brown seemed to be studying the paper
more than the corpse; he held it close to his eyes; and seemed trying to read it
in the twilight. Then he held it up against the faint light, and, as he did so,
lightning stared at them for an instant so white that the paper looked black
against it.
Darkness full of
thunder followed, and after the thunder Father Brown's voice said out of the
dark: “Doctor, this paper is the wrong shape.”
“What do you
mean?” asked Doctor Harris, with a frowning stare.
“It isn't
square,” answered Brown. “It has a sort of edge snipped off at the corner. What
does it mean?”
“How the deuce
should I know?” growled the doctor. “Shall we move this poor chap, do you
think? He's quite dead.”
“No,” answered
the priest; “we must leave him as he lies and send for the police.” But he was
still scrutinising the paper.
As they went back
through the study he stopped by the table and picked up a small pair of nail
scissors. “Ah,” he said, with a sort of relief, “this is what he did it with.
But yet—” And he knitted his brows.
“Oh, stop fooling
with that scrap of paper,” said the doctor emphatically. “It was a fad of his.
He had hundreds of them. He cut all his paper like that,” as he pointed to a
stack of sermon paper still unused on another and smaller table. Father Brown
went up to it and held up a sheet. It was the same irregular shape.
“Quite so,” he
said. “And here I see the corners that were snipped off.” And to the
indignation of his colleague he began to count them.
“That's all
right,” he said, with an apologetic smile. “Twenty-three sheets cut and
twenty-two corners cut off them. And as I see you are impatient we will rejoin
the others.”
“Who is to tell
his wife?” asked Dr. Harris. “Will you go and tell her now, while I send a
servant for the police?”
“As you will,”
said Father Brown indifferently. And he went out to the hall door.
Here also he
found a drama, though of a more grotesque sort. It showed nothing less than his
big friend Flambeau in an attitude to which he had long been unaccustomed,
while upon the pathway at the bottom of the steps was sprawling with his boots
in the air the amiable Atkinson, his billycock hat and walking cane sent flying
in opposite directions along the path. Atkinson had at length wearied of
Flambeau's almost paternal custody, and had endeavoured to knock him down,
which was by no means a smooth game to play with the Roi des Apaches, even
after that monarch's abdication.
Flambeau was
about to leap upon his enemy and secure him once more, when the priest patted
him easily on the shoulder.
“Make it up with
Mr. Atkinson, my friend,” he said. “Beg a mutual pardon and say “Good night. '
We need not detain him any longer.” Then, as Atkinson rose somewhat doubtfully
and gathered his hat and stick and went towards the garden gate, Father Brown
said in a more serious voice: “Where is that Indian?”
They all three
(for the doctor had joined them) turned involuntarily towards the dim grassy
bank amid the tossing trees purple with twilight, where they had last seen the
brown man swaying in his strange prayers. The Indian was gone.
“Confound him,”
cried the doctor, stamping furiously. “Now I know that it was that nigger that
did it.”
“I thought you
didn't believe in magic,” said Father Brown quietly.
“No more I did,”
said the doctor, rolling his eyes. “I only know that I loathed that yellow
devil when I thought he was a sham wizard. And I shall loathe him more if I
come to think he was a real one.”
“Well, his having
escaped is nothing,” said Flambeau. “For we could have proved nothing and done
nothing against him. One hardly goes to the parish constable with a story of
suicide imposed by witchcraft or auto-suggestion.”
Meanwhile Father
Brown had made his way into the house, and now went to break the news to the
wife of the dead man.
When he came out
again he looked a little pale and tragic, but what passed between them in that
interview was never known, even when all was known.
Flambeau, who was
talking quietly with the doctor, was surprised to see his friend reappear so
soon at his elbow; but Brown took no notice, and merely drew the doctor apart.
“You have sent for the police, haven't you?” he asked.
“Yes,” answered
Harris. “They ought to be here in ten minutes.”
“Will you do me a
favour?” said the priest quietly. “The truth is, I make a collection of these
curious stories, which often contain, as in the case of our Hindoo friend,
elements which can hardly be put into a police report. Now, I want you to write
out a report of this case for my private use. Yours is a clever trade,” he
said, looking the doctor gravely and steadily in the face. “I sometimes think
that you know some details of this matter which you have not thought fit to
mention. Mine is a confidential trade like yours, and I will treat anything you
write for me in strict confidence. But write the whole.”
The doctor, who
had been listening thoughtfully with his head a little on one side, looked the
priest in the face for an instant, and said: “All right,” and went into the
study, closing the door behind him.
“Flambeau,” said
Father Brown, “there is a long seat there under the veranda, where we can smoke
out of the rain. You are my only friend in the world, and I want to talk to
you. Or, perhaps, be silent with you.”
They established
themselves comfortably in the veranda seat; Father Brown, against his common
habit, accepted a good cigar and smoked it steadily in silence, while the rain
shrieked and rattled on the roof of the veranda.
“My friend,” he
said at length, “this is a very queer case. A very queer case.”
“I should think
it was,” said Flambeau, with something like a shudder.
“You call it
queer, and I call it queer,” said the other, “and yet we mean quite opposite
things. The modern mind always mixes up two different ideas: mystery in the
sense of what is marvellous, and mystery in the sense of what is complicated.
That is half its difficulty about miracles. A miracle is startling; but it is
simple. It is simple because it is a miracle. It is power coming directly from
God (or the devil) instead of indirectly through nature or human wills. Now,
you mean that this business is marvellous because it is miraculous, because it
is witchcraft worked by a wicked Indian. Understand, I do not say that it was
not spiritual or diabolic. Heaven and hell only know by what surrounding
influences strange sins come into the lives of men. But for the present my
point is this: If it was pure magic, as you think, then it is marvellous; but
it is not mysterious—that is, it is not complicated. The quality of a miracle
is mysterious, but its manner is simple. Now, the manner of this business has
been the reverse of simple.”
The storm that
had slackened for a little seemed to be swelling again, and there came heavy
movements as of faint thunder. Father Brown let fall the ash of his cigar and
went on:
“There has been
in this incident,” he said, “a twisted, ugly, complex quality that does not
belong to the straight bolts either of heaven or hell. As one knows the crooked
track of a snail, I know the crooked track of a man.”
The white
lightning opened its enormous eye in one wink, the sky shut up again, and the
priest went on:
“Of all these
crooked things, the crookedest was the shape of that piece of paper. It was
crookeder than the dagger that killed him.”
“You mean the
paper on which Quinton confessed his suicide,” said Flambeau.
“I mean the paper
on which Quinton wrote, “I die by my own hand,'” answered Father Brown. “The
shape of that paper, my friend, was the wrong shape; the wrong shape, if ever I
have seen it in this wicked world.”
“It only had a
corner snipped off,” said Flambeau, “and I understand that all Quinton's paper
was cut that way.”
“It was a very
odd way,” said the other, “and a very bad way, to my taste and fancy. Look
here, Flambeau, this Quinton—God receive his soul!—was perhaps a bit of a cur
in some ways, but he really was an artist, with the pencil as well as the pen.
His handwriting, though hard to read, was bold and beautiful. I can't prove
what I say; I can't prove anything. But I tell you with the full force of
conviction that he could never have cut that mean little piece off a sheet of
paper. If he had wanted to cut down paper for some purpose of fitting in, or
binding up, or what not, he would have made quite a different slash with the
scissors. Do you remember the shape? It was a mean shape. It was a wrong shape.
Like this. Don't you remember?”
And he waved his
burning cigar before him in the darkness, making irregular squares so rapidly
that Flambeau really seemed to see them as fiery hieroglyphics upon the
darkness— hieroglyphics such as his friend had spoken of, which are undecipherable,
yet can have no good meaning.
“But,” said
Flambeau, as the priest put his cigar in his mouth again and leaned back,
staring at the roof, “suppose somebody else did use the scissors. Why should
somebody else, cutting pieces off his sermon paper, make Quinton commit
suicide?”
Father Brown was
still leaning back and staring at the roof, but he took his cigar out of his
mouth and said: “Quinton never did commit suicide.”
Flambeau stared
at him. “Why, confound it all,” he cried, “then why did he confess to suicide?”
The priest leant
forward again, settled his elbows on his knees, looked at the ground, and said,
in a low, distinct voice: “He never did confess to suicide.”
Flambeau laid his
cigar down. “You mean,” he said, “that the writing was forged?”
“No,” said Father
Brown. “Quinton wrote it all right.”
“Well, there you
are,” said the aggravated Flambeau; “Quinton wrote, “I die by my own hand,'
with his own hand on a plain piece of paper.”
“Of the wrong
shape,” said the priest calmly.
“Oh, the shape be
damned!” cried Flambeau. “What has the shape to do with it?”
“There were
twenty-three snipped papers,” resumed Brown unmoved, “and only twenty-two
pieces snipped off. Therefore one of the pieces had been destroyed, probably
that from the written paper. Does that suggest anything to you?”
A light dawned on
Flambeau's face, and he said: “There was something else written by Quinton,
some other words. “They will tell you I die by my own hand,' or “Do not believe
that—'”
“Hotter, as the
children say,” said his friend. “But the piece was hardly half an inch across;
there was no room for one word, let alone five. Can you think of anything
hardly bigger than a comma which the man with hell in his heart had to tear
away as a testimony against him?”
“I can think of
nothing,” said Flambeau at last.
“What about
quotation marks?” said the priest, and flung his cigar far into the darkness
like a shooting star.
All words had
left the other man's mouth, and Father Brown said, like one going back to
fundamentals:
“Leonard Quinton
was a romancer, and was writing an Oriental romance about wizardry and
hypnotism. He—”
At this moment
the door opened briskly behind them, and the doctor came out with his hat on.
He put a long envelope into the priest's hands.
“That's the
document you wanted,” he said, “and I must be getting home. Good night.”
“Good night,”
said Father Brown, as the doctor walked briskly to the gate. He had left the
front door open, so that a shaft of gaslight fell upon them. In the light of
this Brown opened the envelope and read the following words:
DEAR FATHER
BROWN,—Vicisti Galilee. Otherwise, damn your
eyes, which are
very penetrating ones. Can it be possible that
there is
something in all that stuff of yours after all?
I am a man who
has ever since boyhood believed in Nature and
in all natural
functions and instincts, whether men called them
moral or immoral.
Long before I became a doctor, when I was a
schoolboy keeping
mice and spiders, I believed that to be a good
animal is the
best thing in the world. But just now I am shaken;
I have believed
in Nature; but it seems as if Nature could betray
a man. Can there
be anything in your bosh? I am really getting
morbid.
I loved Quinton's
wife. What was there wrong in that? Nature
told me to, and
it's love that makes the world go round. I also
thought quite
sincerely that she would be happier with a clean
animal like me
than with that tormenting little lunatic. What was
there wrong in
that? I was only facing facts, like a man of
science. She
would have been happier.
According to my
own creed I was quite free to kill Quinton,
which was the
best thing for everybody, even himself. But as a
healthy animal I
had no notion of killing myself. I resolved,
therefore, that I
would never do it until I saw a chance that
would leave me
scot free. I saw that chance this morning.
I have been three
times, all told, into Quinton's study today.
The first time I
went in he would talk about nothing but the weird
tale, called “The
Cure of a Saint,” which he was writing, which
was all about how
some Indian hermit made an English colonel kill
himself by
thinking about him. He showed me the last sheets, and
even read me the
last paragraph, which was something like this:
“The conqueror of
the Punjab, a mere yellow skeleton, but still
gigantic, managed
to lift himself on his elbow and gasp in his
nephew's ear: “I
die by my own hand, yet I die murdered!'” It so
happened by one
chance out of a hundred, that those last words
were written at
the top of a new sheet of paper. I left the room,
and went out into
the garden intoxicated with a frightful
opportunity.
We walked round
the house; and two more things happened in my
favour. You
suspected an Indian, and you found a dagger which the
Indian might most
probably use. Taking the opportunity to stuff
it in my pocket I
went back to Quinton's study, locked the door,
and gave him his
sleeping draught. He was against answering
Atkinson at all,
but I urged him to call out and quiet the fellow,
because I wanted
a clear proof that Quinton was alive when I left
the room for the
second time. Quinton lay down in the conservatory,
and I came
through the study. I am a quick man with my hands, and
in a minute and a
half I had done what I wanted to do. I had
emptied all the
first part of Quinton's romance into the fireplace,
where it burnt to
ashes. Then I saw that the quotation marks
wouldn't do, so I
snipped them off, and to make it seem likelier,
snipped the whole
quire to match. Then I came out with the
knowledge that
Quinton's confession of suicide lay on the front
table, while
Quinton lay alive but asleep in the conservatory
beyond.
The last act was
a desperate one; you can guess it: I pretended
to have seen
Quinton dead and rushed to his room. I delayed you
with the paper,
and, being a quick man with my hands, killed
Quinton while you
were looking at his confession of suicide. He
was half-asleep,
being drugged, and I put his own hand on the
knife and drove
it into his body. The knife was of so queer a
shape that no one
but an operator could have calculated the angle
that would reach
his heart. I wonder if you noticed this.
When I had done
it, the extraordinary thing happened. Nature
deserted me. I
felt ill. I felt just as if I had done something
wrong. I think my
brain is breaking up; I feel some sort of
desperate pleasure
in thinking I have told the thing to somebody;
that I shall not
have to be alone with it if I marry and have
children. What is
the matter with me? ...Madness ...or can one
have remorse,
just as if one were in Byron's poems! I cannot
write any more.
James Erskine
Harris.
Father Brown
carefully folded up the letter, and put it in his breast pocket just as there
came a loud peal at the gate bell, and the wet waterproofs of several policemen
gleamed in the road outside.
The Sins of
Prince Saradine
When Flambeau
took his month's holiday from his office in Westminster he took it in a small
sailing-boat, so small that it passed much of its time as a rowing-boat. He
took it, moreover, in little rivers in the Eastern counties, rivers so small
that the boat looked like a magic boat, sailing on land through meadows and
cornfields. The vessel was just comfortable for two people; there was room only
for necessities, and Flambeau had stocked it with such things as his special
philosophy considered necessary. They reduced themselves, apparently, to four
essentials: tins of salmon, if he should want to eat; loaded revolvers, if he
should want to fight; a bottle of brandy, presumably in case he should faint;
and a priest, presumably in case he should die. With this light luggage he
crawled down the little Norfolk rivers, intending to reach the Broads at last,
but meanwhile delighting in the overhanging gardens and meadows, the mirrored
mansions or villages, lingering to fish in the pools and corners, and in some
sense hugging the shore.
Like a true
philosopher, Flambeau had no aim in his holiday; but, like a true philosopher,
he had an excuse. He had a sort of half purpose, which he took just so
seriously that its success would crown the holiday, but just so lightly that
its failure would not spoil it. Years ago, when he had been a king of thieves
and the most famous figure in Paris, he had often received wild communications
of approval, denunciation, or even love; but one had, somehow, stuck in his
memory. It consisted simply of a visiting-card, in an envelope with an English
postmark. On the back of the card was written in French and in green ink: “If
you ever retire and become respectable, come and see me. I want to meet you,
for I have met all the other great men of my time. That trick of yours of
getting one detective to arrest the other was the most splendid scene in French
history.” On the front of the card was engraved in the formal fashion, “Prince
Saradine, Reed House, Reed Island, Norfolk.”
He had not
troubled much about the prince then, beyond ascertaining that he had been a
brilliant and fashionable figure in southern Italy. In his youth, it was said,
he had eloped with a married woman of high rank; the escapade was scarcely
startling in his social world, but it had clung to men's minds because of an
additional tragedy: the alleged suicide of the insulted husband, who appeared
to have flung himself over a precipice in Sicily. The prince then lived in
Vienna for a time, but his more recent years seemed to have been passed in
perpetual and restless travel. But when Flambeau, like the prince himself, had
left European celebrity and settled in England, it occurred to him that he
might pay a surprise visit to this eminent exile in the Norfolk Broads. Whether
he should find the place he had no idea; and, indeed, it was sufficiently small
and forgotten. But, as things fell out, he found it much sooner than he
expected.
They had moored
their boat one night under a bank veiled in high grasses and short pollarded
trees. Sleep, after heavy sculling, had come to them early, and by a
corresponding accident they awoke before it was light. To speak more strictly,
they awoke before it was daylight; for a large lemon moon was only just setting
in the forest of high grass above their heads, and the sky was of a vivid
violet-blue, nocturnal but bright. Both men had simultaneously a reminiscence
of childhood, of the elfin and adventurous time when tall weeds close over us
like woods. Standing up thus against the large low moon, the daisies really
seemed to be giant daisies, the dandelions to be giant dandelions. Somehow it
reminded them of the dado of a nursery wall-paper. The drop of the river-bed
sufficed to sink them under the roots of all shrubs and flowers and make them
gaze upwards at the grass. “By Jove!” said Flambeau, “it's like being in
fairyland.”
Father Brown sat
bolt upright in the boat and crossed himself. His movement was so abrupt that
his friend asked him, with a mild stare, what was the matter.
“The people who
wrote the mediaeval ballads,” answered the priest, “knew more about fairies
than you do. It isn't only nice things that happen in fairyland.”
“Oh, bosh!” said
Flambeau. “Only nice things could happen under such an innocent moon. I am for
pushing on now and seeing what does really come. We may die and rot before we
ever see again such a moon or such a mood.”
“All right,” said
Father Brown. “I never said it was always wrong to enter fairyland. I only said
it was always dangerous.”
They pushed
slowly up the brightening river; the glowing violet of the sky and the pale
gold of the moon grew fainter and fainter, amd faded into that vast colourless
cosmos that precedes the colours of the dawn. When the first faint stripes of
red and gold and grey split the horizon from end to end they were broken by the
black bulk of a town or village which sat on the river just ahead of them. It
was already an easy twilight, in which all things were visible, when they came
under the hanging roofs and bridges of this riverside hamlet. The houses, with
their long, low, stooping roofs, seemed to come down to drink at the river,
like huge grey and red cattle. The broadening and whitening dawn had already
turned to working daylight before they saw any living creature on the wharves
and bridges of that silent town. Eventually they saw a very placid and
prosperous man in his shirt sleeves, with a face as round as the recently
sunken moon, and rays of red whisker around the low arc of it, who was leaning
on a post above the sluggish tide. By an impulse not to be analysed, Flambeau
rose to his full height in the swaying boat and shouted at the man to ask if he
knew Reed Island or Reed House. The prosperous man's smile grew slightly more
expansive, and he simply pointed up the river towards the next bend of it.
Flambeau went ahead without further speech.
The boat took
many such grassy corners and followed many such reedy and silent reaches of
river; but before the search had become monotonous they had swung round a
specially sharp angle and come into the silence of a sort of pool or lake, the
sight of which instinctively arrested them. For in the middle of this wider
piece of water, fringed on every side with rushes, lay a long, low islet, along
which ran a long, low house or bungalow built of bamboo or some kind of tough
tropic cane. The upstanding rods of bamboo which made the walls were pale
yellow, the sloping rods that made the roof were of darker red or brown,
otherwise the long house was a thing of repetition and monotony. The early
morning breeze rustled the reeds round the island and sang in the strange
ribbed house as in a giant pan-pipe.
“By George!”
cried Flambeau; “here is the place, after all! Here is Reed Island, if ever
there was one. Here is Reed House, if it is anywhere. I believe that fat man
with whiskers was a fairy.”
“Perhaps,”
remarked Father Brown impartially. “If he was, he was a bad fairy.”
But even as he
spoke the impetuous Flambeau had run his boat ashore in the rattling reeds, and
they stood in the long, quaint islet beside the odd and silent house.
The house stood
with its back, as it were, to the river and the only landing-stage; the main
entrance was on the other side, and looked down the long island garden. The
visitors approached it, therefore, by a small path running round nearly three
sides of the house, close under the low eaves. Through three different windows
on three different sides they looked in on the same long, well-lit room,
panelled in light wood, with a large number of looking-glasses, and laid out as
for an elegant lunch. The front door, when they came round to it at last, was
flanked by two turquoise-blue flower pots. It was opened by a butler of the
drearier type—long, lean, grey and listless— who murmured that Prince Saradine
was from home at present, but was expected hourly; the house being kept ready
for him and his guests. The exhibition of the card with the scrawl of green ink
awoke a flicker of life in the parchment face of the depressed retainer, and it
was with a certain shaky courtesy that he suggested that the strangers should
remain. “His Highness may be here any minute,” he said, “and would be
distressed to have just missed any gentleman he had invited. We have orders
always to keep a little cold lunch for him and his friends, and I am sure he
would wish it to be offered.”
Moved with
curiosity to this minor adventure, Flambeau assented gracefully, and followed
the old man, who ushered him ceremoniously into the long, lightly panelled
room. There was nothing very notable about it, except the rather unusual
alternation of many long, low windows with many long, low oblongs of
looking-glass, which gave a singular air of lightness and unsubstantialness to
the place. It was somehow like lunching out of doors. One or two pictures of a
quiet kind hung in the corners, one a large grey photograph of a very young man
in uniform, another a red chalk sketch of two long-haired boys. Asked by
Flambeau whether the soldierly person was the prince, the butler answered
shortly in the negative; it was the prince's younger brother, Captain Stephen
Saradine, he said. And with that the old man seemed to dry up suddenly and lose
all taste for conversation.
After lunch had
tailed off with exquisite coffee and liqueurs, the guests were introduced to
the garden, the library, and the housekeeper—a dark, handsome lady, of no
little majesty, and rather like a plutonic Madonna. It appeared that she and
the butler were the only survivors of the prince's original foreign menage the
other servants now in the house being new and collected in Norfolk by the
housekeeper. This latter lady went by the name of Mrs. Anthony, but she spoke
with a slight Italian accent, and Flambeau did not doubt that Anthony was a
Norfolk version of some more Latin name. Mr. Paul, the butler, also had a
faintly foreign air, but he was in tongue and training English, as are many of
the most polished men-servants of the cosmopolitan nobility.
Pretty and unique
as it was, the place had about it a curious luminous sadness. Hours passed in
it like days. The long, well-windowed rooms were full of daylight, but it
seemed a dead daylight. And through all other incidental noises, the sound of
talk, the clink of glasses, or the passing feet of servants, they could hear on
all sides of the house the melancholy noise of the river.
“We have taken a
wrong turning, and come to a wrong place,” said Father Brown, looking out of
the window at the grey-green sedges and the silver flood. “Never mind; one can
sometimes do good by being the right person in the wrong place.”
Father Brown,
though commonly a silent, was an oddly sympathetic little man, and in those few
but endless hours he unconsciously sank deeper into the secrets of Reed House
than his professional friend. He had that knack of friendly silence which is so
essential to gossip; and saying scarcely a word, he probably obtained from his
new acquaintances all that in any case they would have told. The butler indeed
was naturally uncommunicative. He betrayed a sullen and almost animal affection
for his master; who, he said, had been very badly treated. The chief offender
seemed to be his highness's brother, whose name alone would lengthen the old
man's lantern jaws and pucker his parrot nose into a sneer. Captain Stephen was
a ne'er-do-weel, apparently, and had drained his benevolent brother of hundreds
and thousands; forced him to fly from fashionable life and live quietly in this
retreat. That was all Paul, the butler, would say, and Paul was obviously a
partisan.
The Italian
housekeeper was somewhat more communicative, being, as Brown fancied, somewhat
less content. Her tone about her master was faintly acid; though not without a
certain awe. Flambeau and his friend were standing in the room of the
looking-glasses examining the red sketch of the two boys, when the housekeeper
swept in swiftly on some domestic errand. It was a peculiarity of this
glittering, glass-panelled place that anyone entering was reflected in four or
five mirrors at once; and Father Brown, without turning round, stopped in the
middle of a sentence of family criticism. But Flambeau, who had his face close
up to the picture, was already saying in a loud voice, “The brothers Saradine,
I suppose. They both look innocent enough. It would be hard to say which is the
good brother and which the bad.” Then, realising the lady's presence, he turned
the conversation with some triviality, and strolled out into the garden. But
Father Brown still gazed steadily at the red crayon sketch; and Mrs. Anthony
still gazed steadily at Father Brown.
She had large and
tragic brown eyes, and her olive face glowed darkly with a curious and painful
wonder—as of one doubtful of a stranger's identity or purpose. Whether the
little priest's coat and creed touched some southern memories of confession, or
whether she fancied he knew more than he did, she said to him in a low voice as
to a fellow plotter, “He is right enough in one way, your friend. He says it
would be hard to pick out the good and bad brothers. Oh, it would be hard, it
would be mighty hard, to pick out the good one.”
“I don't
understand you,” said Father Brown, and began to move away.
The woman took a
step nearer to him, with thunderous brows and a sort of savage stoop, like a bull
lowering his horns.
“There isn't a
good one,” she hissed. “There was badness enough in the captain taking all that
money, but I don't think there was much goodness in the prince giving it. The
captain's not the only one with something against him.”
A light dawned on
the cleric's averted face, and his mouth formed silently the word “blackmail.”
Even as he did so the woman turned an abrupt white face over her shoulder and
almost fell. The door had opened soundlessly and the pale Paul stood like a
ghost in the doorway. By the weird trick of the reflecting walls, it seemed as
if five Pauls had entered by five doors simultaneously.
“His Highness,”
he said, “has just arrived.”
In the same flash
the figure of a man had passed outside the first window, crossing the sunlit
pane like a lighted stage. An instant later he passed at the second window and
the many mirrors repainted in successive frames the same eagle profile and
marching figure. He was erect and alert, but his hair was white and his
complexion of an odd ivory yellow. He had that short, curved Roman nose which
generally goes with long, lean cheeks and chin, but these were partly masked by
moustache and imperial. The moustache was much darker than the beard, giving an
effect slightly theatrical, and he was dressed up to the same dashing part,
having a white top hat, an orchid in his coat, a yellow waistcoat and yellow
gloves which he flapped and swung as he walked. When he came round to the front
door they heard the stiff Paul open it, and heard the new arrival say
cheerfully, “Well, you see I have come.” The stiff Mr. Paul bowed and answered
in his inaudible manner; for a few minutes their conversation could not be
heard. Then the butler said, “Everything is at your disposal”; and the
glove-flapping Prince Saradine came gaily into the room to greet them. They
beheld once more that spectral scene— five princes entering a room with five
doors.
The prince put
the white hat and yellow gloves on the table and offered his hand quite
cordially.
“Delighted to see
you here, Mr. Flambeau,” he said. “Knowing you very well by reputation, if
that's not an indiscreet remark.”
“Not at all,”
answered Flambeau, laughing. “I am not sensitive. Very few reputations are
gained by unsullied virtue.”
The prince
flashed a sharp look at him to see if the retort had any personal point; then
he laughed also and offered chairs to everyone, including himself.
“Pleasant little
place, this, I think,” he said with a detached air. “Not much to do, I fear;
but the fishing is really good.”
The priest, who
was staring at him with the grave stare of a baby, was haunted by some fancy
that escaped definition. He looked at the grey, carefully curled hair, yellow
white visage, and slim, somewhat foppish figure. These were not unnatural,
though perhaps a shade prononce, like the outfit of a figure behind the
footlights. The nameless interest lay in something else, in the very framework
of the face; Brown was tormented with a half memory of having seen it somewhere
before. The man looked like some old friend of his dressed up. Then he suddenly
remembered the mirrors, and put his fancy down to some psychological effect of
that multiplication of human masks.
Prince Saradine
distributed his social attentions between his guests with great gaiety and
tact. Finding the detective of a sporting turn and eager to employ his holiday,
he guided Flambeau and Flambeau's boat down to the best fishing spot in the
stream, and was back in his own canoe in twenty minutes to join Father Brown in
the library and plunge equally politely into the priest's more philosophic
pleasures. He seemed to know a great deal both about the fishing and the books,
though of these not the most edifying; he spoke five or six languages, though
chiefly the slang of each. He had evidently lived in varied cities and very
motley societies, for some of his cheerfullest stories were about gambling
hells and opium dens, Australian bushrangers or Italian brigands. Father Brown
knew that the once-celebrated Saradine had spent his last few years in almost
ceaseless travel, but he had not guessed that the travels were so disreputable
or so amusing.
Indeed, with all
his dignity of a man of the world, Prince Saradine radiated to such sensitive
observers as the priest, a certain atmosphere of the restless and even the
unreliable. His face was fastidious, but his eye was wild; he had little
nervous tricks, like a man shaken by drink or drugs, and he neither had, nor
professed to have, his hand on the helm of household affairs. All these were
left to the two old servants, especially to the butler, who was plainly the
central pillar of the house. Mr. Paul, indeed, was not so much a butler as a
sort of steward or, even, chamberlain; he dined privately, but with almost as
much pomp as his master; he was feared by all the servants; and he consulted
with the prince decorously, but somewhat unbendingly— rather as if he were the
prince's solicitor. The sombre housekeeper was a mere shadow in comparison;
indeed, she seemed to efface herself and wait only on the butler, and Brown
heard no more of those volcanic whispers which had half told him of the younger
brother who blackmailed the elder. Whether the prince was really being thus
bled by the absent captain, he could not be certain, but there was something
insecure and secretive about Saradine that made the tale by no means
incredible.
When they went
once more into the long hall with the windows and the mirrors, yellow evening
was dropping over the waters and the willowy banks; and a bittern sounded in
the distance like an elf upon his dwarfish drum. The same singular sentiment of
some sad and evil fairyland crossed the priest's mind again like a little grey
cloud. “I wish Flambeau were back,” he muttered.
“Do you believe
in doom?” asked the restless Prince Saradine suddenly.
“No,” answered
his guest. “I believe in Doomsday.”
The prince turned
from the window and stared at him in a singular manner, his face in shadow
against the sunset. “What do you mean?” he asked.
“I mean that we
here are on the wrong side of the tapestry,” answered Father Brown. “The things
that happen here do not seem to mean anything; they mean something somewhere
else. Somewhere else retribution will come on the real offender. Here it often
seems to fall on the wrong person.”
The prince made
an inexplicable noise like an animal; in his shadowed face the eyes were
shining queerly. A new and shrewd thought exploded silently in the other's
mind. Was there another meaning in Saradine's blend of brilliancy and
abruptness? Was the prince—Was he perfectly sane? He was repeating, “The wrong
person—the wrong person,” many more times than was natural in a social
exclamation.
Then Father Brown
awoke tardily to a second truth. In the mirrors before him he could see the
silent door standing open, and the silent Mr. Paul standing in it, with his
usual pallid impassiveness.
“I thought it
better to announce at once,” he said, with the same stiff respectfulness as of
an old family lawyer, “a boat rowed by six men has come to the landing-stage,
and there's a gentleman sitting in the stern.”
“A boat!”
repeated the prince; “a gentleman?” and he rose to his feet.
There was a
startled silence punctuated only by the odd noise of the bird in the sedge; and
then, before anyone could speak again, a new face and figure passed in profile
round the three sunlit windows, as the prince had passed an hour or two before.
But except for the accident that both outlines were aquiline, they had little
in common. Instead of the new white topper of Saradine, was a black one of
antiquated or foreign shape; under it was a young and very solemn face, clean
shaven, blue about its resolute chin, and carrying a faint suggestion of the
young Napoleon. The association was assisted by something old and odd about the
whole get-up, as of a man who had never troubled to change the fashions of his
fathers. He had a shabby blue frock coat, a red, soldierly looking waistcoat,
and a kind of coarse white trousers common among the early Victorians, but
strangely incongruous today. From all this old clothes-shop his olive face
stood out strangely young and monstrously sincere.
“The deuce!” said
Prince Saradine, and clapping on his white hat he went to the front door
himself, flinging it open on the sunset garden.
By that time the
new-comer and his followers were drawn up on the lawn like a small stage army.
The six boatmen had pulled the boat well up on shore, and were guarding it
almost menacingly, holding their oars erect like spears. They were swarthy men,
and some of them wore earrings. But one of them stood forward beside the
olive-faced young man in the red waistcoat, and carried a large black case of
unfamiliar form.
“Your name,” said
the young man, “is Saradine?”
Saradine assented
rather negligently.
The new-comer had
dull, dog-like brown eyes, as different as possible from the restless and
glittering grey eyes of the prince. But once again Father Brown was tortured
with a sense of having seen somewhere a replica of the face; and once again he
remembered the repetitions of the glass-panelled room, and put down the
coincidence to that. “Confound this crystal palace!” he muttered. “One sees
everything too many times. It's like a dream.”
“If you are
Prince Saradine,” said the young man, “I may tell you that my name is
Antonelli.”
“Antonelli,”
repeated the prince languidly. “Somehow I remember the name.”
“Permit me to
present myself,” said the young Italian.
With his left
hand he politely took off his old-fashioned top-hat; with his right he caught
Prince Saradine so ringing a crack across the face that the white top hat
rolled down the steps and one of the blue flower-pots rocked upon its pedestal.
The prince,
whatever he was, was evidently not a coward; he sprang at his enemy's throat
and almost bore him backwards to the grass. But his enemy extricated himself
with a singularly inappropriate air of hurried politeness.
“That is all
right,” he said, panting and in halting English. “I have insulted. I will give
satisfaction. Marco, open the case.”
The man beside
him with the earrings and the big black case proceeded to unlock it. He took
out of it two long Italian rapiers, with splendid steel hilts and blades, which
he planted point downwards in the lawn. The strange young man standing facing
the entrance with his yellow and vindictive face, the two swords standing up in
the turf like two crosses in a cemetery, and the line of the ranked towers
behind, gave it all an odd appearance of being some barbaric court of justice.
But everything else was unchanged, so sudden had been the interruption. The
sunset gold still glowed on the lawn, and the bittern still boomed as
announcing some small but dreadful destiny.
“Prince
Saradine,” said the man called Antonelli, “when I was an infant in the cradle
you killed my father and stole my mother; my father was the more fortunate. You
did not kill him fairly, as I am going to kill you. You and my wicked mother
took him driving to a lonely pass in Sicily, flung him down a cliff, and went
on your way. I could imitate you if I chose, but imitating you is too vile. I
have followed you all over the world, and you have always fled from me. But
this is the end of the world—and of you. I have you now, and I give you the
chance you never gave my father. Choose one of those swords.”
Prince Saradine,
with contracted brows, seemed to hesitate a moment, but his ears were still
singing with the blow, and he sprang forward and snatched at one of the hilts.
Father Brown had also sprung forward, striving to compose the dispute; but he
soon found his personal presence made matters worse. Saradine was a French
freemason and a fierce atheist, and a priest moved him by the law of
contraries. And for the other man neither priest nor layman moved him at all.
This young man with the Bonaparte face and the brown eyes was something far
sterner than a puritan—a pagan. He was a simple slayer from the morning of the
earth; a man of the stone age— a man of stone.
One hope
remained, the summoning of the household; and Father Brown ran back into the
house. He found, however, that all the under servants had been given a holiday
ashore by the autocrat Paul, and that only the sombre Mrs. Anthony moved
uneasily about the long rooms. But the moment she turned a ghastly face upon
him, he resolved one of the riddles of the house of mirrors. The heavy brown
eyes of Antonelli were the heavy brown eyes of Mrs. Anthony; and in a flash he
saw half the story.
“Your son is
outside,” he said without wasting words; “either he or the prince will be
killed. Where is Mr. Paul?”
“He is at the
landing-stage,” said the woman faintly. “He is—he is—signalling for help.”
“Mrs. Anthony,”
said Father Brown seriously, “there is no time for nonsense. My friend has his
boat down the river fishing. Your son's boat is guarded by your son's men.
There is only this one canoe; what is Mr. Paul doing with it?”
“Santa Maria! I
do not know,” she said; and swooned all her length on the matted floor.
Father Brown
lifted her to a sofa, flung a pot of water over her, shouted for help, and then
rushed down to the landing-stage of the little island. But the canoe was
already in mid-stream, and old Paul was pulling and pushing it up the river
with an energy incredible at his years.
“I will save my
master,” he cried, his eyes blazing maniacally. “I will save him yet!”
Father Brown
could do nothing but gaze after the boat as it struggled up-stream and pray
that the old man might waken the little town in time.
“A duel is bad
enough,” he muttered, rubbing up his rough dust-coloured hair, “but there's
something wrong about this duel, even as a duel. I feel it in my bones. But
what can it be?”
As he stood
staring at the water, a wavering mirror of sunset, he heard from the other end
of the island garden a small but unmistakable sound—the cold concussion of
steel. He turned his head.
Away on the
farthest cape or headland of the long islet, on a strip of turf beyond the last
rank of roses, the duellists had already crossed swords. Evening above them was
a dome of virgin gold, and, distant as they were, every detail was picked out.
They had cast off their coats, but the yellow waistcoat and white hair of
Saradine, the red waistcoat and white trousers of Antonelli, glittered in the
level light like the colours of the dancing clockwork dolls. The two swords
sparkled from point to pommel like two diamond pins. There was something
frightful in the two figures appearing so little and so gay. They looked like
two butterflies trying to pin each other to a cork.
Father Brown ran
as hard as he could, his little legs going like a wheel. But when he came to
the field of combat he found he was born too late and too early—too late to
stop the strife, under the shadow of the grim Sicilians leaning on their oars,
and too early to anticipate any disastrous issue of it. For the two men were
singularly well matched, the prince using his skill with a sort of cynical
confidence, the Sicilian using his with a murderous care. Few finer fencing
matches can ever have been seen in crowded amphitheatres than that which
tinkled and sparkled on that forgotten island in the reedy river. The dizzy
fight was balanced so long that hope began to revive in the protesting priest;
by all common probability Paul must soon come back with the police. It would be
some comfort even if Flambeau came back from his fishing, for Flambeau,
physically speaking, was worth four other men. But there was no sign of
Flambeau, and, what was much queerer, no sign of Paul or the police. No other
raft or stick was left to float on; in that lost island in that vast nameless
pool, they were cut off as on a rock in the Pacific.
Almost as he had
the thought the ringing of the rapiers quickened to a rattle, the prince's arms
flew up, and the point shot out behind between his shoulder-blades. He went
over with a great whirling movement, almost like one throwing the half of a
boy's cart-wheel. The sword flew from his hand like a shooting star, and dived
into the distant river. And he himself sank with so earth-shaking a subsidence
that he broke a big rose-tree with his body and shook up into the sky a cloud
of red earth— like the smoke of some heathen sacrifice. The Sicilian had made
blood-offering to the ghost of his father.
The priest was
instantly on his knees by the corpse; but only to make too sure that it was a
corpse. As he was still trying some last hopeless tests he heard for the first
time voices from farther up the river, and saw a police boat shoot up to the
landing-stage, with constables and other important people, including the
excited Paul. The little priest rose with a distinctly dubious grimace.
“Now, why on
earth,” he muttered, “why on earth couldn't he have come before?”
Some seven
minutes later the island was occupied by an invasion of townsfolk and police,
and the latter had put their hands on the victorious duellist, ritually
reminding him that anything he said might be used against him.
“I shall not say
anything,” said the monomaniac, with a wonderful and peaceful face. “I shall
never say anything more. I am very happy, and I only want to be hanged.”
Then he shut his
mouth as they led him away, and it is the strange but certain truth that he
never opened it again in this world, except to say “Guilty” at his trial.
Father Brown had
stared at the suddenly crowded garden, the arrest of the man of blood, the
carrying away of the corpse after its examination by the doctor, rather as one
watches the break-up of some ugly dream; he was motionless, like a man in a
nightmare. He gave his name and address as a witness, but declined their offer
of a boat to the shore, and remained alone in the island garden, gazing at the
broken rose bush and the whole green theatre of that swift and inexplicable
tragedy. The light died along the river; mist rose in the marshy banks; a few
belated birds flitted fitfully across.
Stuck stubbornly
in his sub-consciousness (which was an unusually lively one) was an unspeakable
certainty that there was something still unexplained. This sense that had clung
to him all day could not be fully explained by his fancy about “looking-glass
land.” Somehow he had not seen the real story, but some game or masque. And yet
people do not get hanged or run through the body for the sake of a charade.
As he sat on the
steps of the landing-stage ruminating he grew conscious of the tall, dark
streak of a sail coming silently down the shining river, and sprang to his feet
with such a backrush of feeling that he almost wept.
“Flambeau!” he
cried, and shook his friend by both hands again and again, much to the
astonishment of that sportsman, as he came on shore with his fishing tackle.
“Flambeau,” he said, “so you're not killed?”
“Killed!”
repeated the angler in great astonishment. “And why should I be killed?”
“Oh, because
nearly everybody else is,” said his companion rather wildly. “Saradine got
murdered, and Antonelli wants to be hanged, and his mother's fainted, and I,
for one, don't know whether I'm in this world or the next. But, thank God,
you're in the same one.” And he took the bewildered Flambeau's arm.
As they turned
from the landing-stage they came under the eaves of the low bamboo house, and
looked in through one of the windows, as they had done on their first arrival.
They beheld a lamp-lit interior well calculated to arrest their eyes. The table
in the long dining-room had been laid for dinner when Saradine's destroyer had
fallen like a stormbolt on the island. And the dinner was now in placid
progress, for Mrs. Anthony sat somewhat sullenly at the foot of the table,
while at the head of it was Mr. Paul, the major domo, eating and drinking of
the best, his bleared, bluish eyes standing queerly out of his face, his gaunt
countenance inscrutable, but by no means devoid of satisfaction.
With a gesture of
powerful impatience, Flambeau rattled at the window, wrenched it open, and put
an indignant head into the lamp-lit room.
“Well,” he cried.
“I can understand you may need some refreshment, but really to steal your
master's dinner while he lies murdered in the garden—”
“I have stolen a
great many things in a long and pleasant life,” replied the strange old
gentleman placidly; “this dinner is one of the few things I have not stolen.
This dinner and this house and garden happen to belong to me.”
A thought flashed
across Flambeau's face. “You mean to say,” he began, “that the will of Prince
Saradine—”
“I am Prince
Saradine,” said the old man, munching a salted almond.
Father Brown, who
was looking at the birds outside, jumped as if he were shot, and put in at the
window a pale face like a turnip.
“You are what?”
he repeated in a shrill voice.
“Paul, Prince
Saradine, A vos ordres,” said the venerable person politely, lifting a glass of
sherry. “I live here very quietly, being a domestic kind of fellow; and for the
sake of modesty I am called Mr. Paul, to distinguish me from my unfortunate
brother Mr. Stephen. He died, I hear, recently—in the garden. Of course, it is
not my fault if enemies pursue him to this place. It is owing to the
regrettable irregularity of his life. He was not a domestic character.”
He relapsed into
silence, and continued to gaze at the opposite wall just above the bowed and
sombre head of the woman. They saw plainly the family likeness that had haunted
them in the dead man. Then his old shoulders began to heave and shake a little,
as if he were choking, but his face did not alter.
“My God!” cried
Flambeau after a pause, “he's laughing!”
“Come away,” said
Father Brown, who was quite white. “Come away from this house of hell. Let us
get into an honest boat again.”
Night had sunk on
rushes and river by the time they had pushed off from the island, and they went
down-stream in the dark, warming themselves with two big cigars that glowed
like crimson ships' lanterns. Father Brown took his cigar out of his mouth and
said:
“I suppose you
can guess the whole story now? After all, it's a primitive story. A man had two
enemies. He was a wise man. And so he discovered that two enemies are better
than one.”
“I do not follow
that,” answered Flambeau.
“Oh, it's really
simple,” rejoined his friend. “Simple, though anything but innocent. Both the
Saradines were scamps, but the prince, the elder, was the sort of scamp that
gets to the top, and the younger, the captain, was the sort that sinks to the
bottom. This squalid officer fell from beggar to blackmailer, and one ugly day
he got his hold upon his brother, the prince. Obviously it was for no light
matter, for Prince Paul Saradine was frankly “fast,' and had no reputation to
lose as to the mere sins of society. In plain fact, it was a hanging matter,
and Stephen literally had a rope round his brother's neck. He had somehow
discovered the truth about the Sicilian affair, and could prove that Paul
murdered old Antonelli in the mountains. The captain raked in the hush money
heavily for ten years, until even the prince's splendid fortune began to look a
little foolish.
“But Prince
Saradine bore another burden besides his blood-sucking brother. He knew that
the son of Antonelli, a mere child at the time of the murder, had been trained
in savage Sicilian loyalty, and lived only to avenge his father, not with the
gibbet (for he lacked Stephen's legal proof), but with the old weapons of
vendetta. The boy had practised arms with a deadly perfection, and about the
time that he was old enough to use them Prince Saradine began, as the society
papers said, to travel. The fact is that he began to flee for his life, passing
from place to place like a hunted criminal; but with one relentless man upon
his trail. That was Prince Paul's position, and by no means a pretty one. The
more money he spent on eluding Antonelli the less he had to silence Stephen.
The more he gave to silence Stephen the less chance there was of finally
escaping Antonelli. Then it was that he showed himself a great man—a genius
like Napoleon.
“Instead of
resisting his two antagonists, he surrendered suddenly to both of them. He gave
way like a Japanese wrestler, and his foes fell prostrate before him. He gave
up the race round the world, and he gave up his address to young Antonelli;
then he gave up everything to his brother. He sent Stephen money enough for
smart clothes and easy travel, with a letter saying roughly: “This is all I
have left. You have cleaned me out. I still have a little house in Norfolk,
with servants and a cellar, and if you want more from me you must take that.
Come and take possession if you like, and I will live there quietly as your
friend or agent or anything. ' He knew that the Sicilian had never seen the
Saradine brothers save, perhaps, in pictures; he knew they were somewhat alike,
both having grey, pointed beards. Then he shaved his own face and waited. The
trap worked. The unhappy captain, in his new clothes, entered the house in
triumph as a prince, and walked upon the Sicilian's sword.
“There was one
hitch, and it is to the honour of human nature. Evil spirits like Saradine
often blunder by never expecting the virtues of mankind. He took it for granted
that the Italian's blow, when it came, would be dark, violent and nameless,
like the blow it avenged; that the victim would be knifed at night, or shot
from behind a hedge, and so die without speech. It was a bad minute for Prince
Paul when Antonelli's chivalry proposed a formal duel, with all its possible
explanations. It was then that I found him putting off in his boat with wild
eyes. He was fleeing, bareheaded, in an open boat before Antonelli should learn
who he was.
“But, however
agitated, he was not hopeless. He knew the adventurer and he knew the fanatic.
It was quite probable that Stephen, the adventurer, would hold his tongue,
through his mere histrionic pleasure in playing a part, his lust for clinging
to his new cosy quarters, his rascal's trust in luck, and his fine fencing. It
was certain that Antonelli, the fanatic, would hold his tongue, and be hanged
without telling tales of his family. Paul hung about on the river till he knew
the fight was over. Then he roused the town, brought the police, saw his two
vanquished enemies taken away forever, and sat down smiling to his dinner.”
“Laughing, God
help us!” said Flambeau with a strong shudder. “Do they get such ideas from
Satan?”
“He got that idea
from you,” answered the priest.
“God forbid!”
ejaculated Flambeau. “From me! What do you mean!”
The priest pulled
a visiting-card from his pocket and held it up in the faint glow of his cigar;
it was scrawled with green ink.
“Don't you
remember his original invitation to you?” he asked, “and the compliment to your
criminal exploit? “That trick of yours,' he says, “of getting one detective to
arrest the other'? He has just copied your trick. With an enemy on each side of
him, he slipped swiftly out of the way and let them collide and kill each
other.”
Flambeau tore
Prince Saradine's card from the priest's hands and rent it savagely in small
pieces.
“There's the last
of that old skull and crossbones,” he said as he scattered the pieces upon the
dark and disappearing waves of the stream; “but I should think it would poison
the fishes.”
The last gleam of
white card and green ink was drowned and darkened; a faint and vibrant colour
as of morning changed the sky, and the moon behind the grasses grew paler. They
drifted in silence.
“Father,” said
Flambeau suddenly, “do you think it was all a dream?”
The priest shook
his head, whether in dissent or agnosticism, but remained mute. A smell of
hawthorn and of orchards came to them through the darkness, telling them that a
wind was awake; the next moment it swayed their little boat and swelled their
sail, and carried them onward down the winding river to happier places and the
homes of harmless men.
The Hammer of God
The little village
of Bohun Beacon was perched on a hill so steep that the tall spire of its
church seemed only like the peak of a small mountain. At the foot of the church
stood a smithy, generally red with fires and always littered with hammers and
scraps of iron; opposite to this, over a rude cross of cobbled paths, was “The
Blue Boar,” the only inn of the place. It was upon this crossway, in the
lifting of a leaden and silver daybreak, that two brothers met in the street
and spoke; though one was beginning the day and the other finishing it. The
Rev. and Hon. Wilfred Bohun was very devout, and was making his way to some
austere exercises of prayer or contemplation at dawn. Colonel the Hon. Norman
Bohun, his elder brother, was by no means devout, and was sitting in evening
dress on the bench outside “The Blue Boar,” drinking what the philosophic
observer was free to regard either as his last glass on Tuesday or his first on
Wednesday. The colonel was not particular.
The Bohuns were
one of the very few aristocratic families really dating from the Middle Ages,
and their pennon had actually seen Palestine. But it is a great mistake to
suppose that such houses stand high in chivalric tradition. Few except the poor
preserve traditions. Aristocrats live not in traditions but in fashions. The
Bohuns had been Mohocks under Queen Anne and Mashers under Queen Victoria. But
like more than one of the really ancient houses, they had rotted in the last
two centuries into mere drunkards and dandy degenerates, till there had even
come a whisper of insanity. Certainly there was something hardly human about
the colonel's wolfish pursuit of pleasure, and his chronic resolution not to go
home till morning had a touch of the hideous clarity of insomnia. He was a
tall, fine animal, elderly, but with hair still startlingly yellow. He would
have looked merely blonde and leonine, but his blue eyes were sunk so deep in
his face that they looked black. They were a little too close together. He had
very long yellow moustaches; on each side of them a fold or furrow from nostril
to jaw, so that a sneer seemed cut into his face. Over his evening clothes he
wore a curious pale yellow coat that looked more like a very light dressing
gown than an overcoat, and on the back of his head was stuck an extraordinary
broad-brimmed hat of a bright green colour, evidently some oriental curiosity
caught up at random. He was proud of appearing in such incongruous
attires—proud of the fact that he always made them look congruous.
His brother the
curate had also the yellow hair and the elegance, but he was buttoned up to the
chin in black, and his face was clean-shaven, cultivated, and a little nervous.
He seemed to live for nothing but his religion; but there were some who said (notably
the blacksmith, who was a Presbyterian) that it was a love of Gothic
architecture rather than of God, and that his haunting of the church like a
ghost was only another and purer turn of the almost morbid thirst for beauty
which sent his brother raging after women and wine. This charge was doubtful,
while the man's practical piety was indubitable. Indeed, the charge was mostly
an ignorant misunderstanding of the love of solitude and secret prayer, and was
founded on his being often found kneeling, not before the altar, but in
peculiar places, in the crypts or gallery, or even in the belfry. He was at the
moment about to enter the church through the yard of the smithy, but stopped
and frowned a little as he saw his brother's cavernous eyes staring in the same
direction. On the hypothesis that the colonel was interested in the church he
did not waste any speculations. There only remained the blacksmith's shop, and
though the blacksmith was a Puritan and none of his people, Wilfred Bohun had
heard some scandals about a beautiful and rather celebrated wife. He flung a
suspicious look across the shed, and the colonel stood up laughing to speak to
him.
“Good morning,
Wilfred,” he said. “Like a good landlord I am watching sleeplessly over my
people. I am going to call on the blacksmith.”
Wilfred looked at
the ground, and said: “The blacksmith is out. He is over at Greenford.”
“I know,”
answered the other with silent laughter; “that is why I am calling on him.”
“Norman,” said
the cleric, with his eye on a pebble in the road, “are you ever afraid of
thunderbolts?”
“What do you
mean?” asked the colonel. “Is your hobby meteorology?”
“I mean,” said
Wilfred, without looking up, “do you ever think that God might strike you in
the street?”
“I beg your
pardon,” said the colonel; “I see your hobby is folk-lore.”
“I know your
hobby is blasphemy,” retorted the religious man, stung in the one live place of
his nature. “But if you do not fear God, you have good reason to fear man.”
The elder raised
his eyebrows politely. “Fear man?” he said.
“Barnes the
blacksmith is the biggest and strongest man for forty miles round,” said the
clergyman sternly. “I know you are no coward or weakling, but he could throw
you over the wall.”
This struck home,
being true, and the lowering line by mouth and nostril darkened and deepened.
For a moment he stood with the heavy sneer on his face. But in an instant
Colonel Bohun had recovered his own cruel good humour and laughed, showing two
dog-like front teeth under his yellow moustache. “In that case, my dear
Wilfred,” he said quite carelessly, “it was wise for the last of the Bohuns to
come out partially in armour.”
And he took off
the queer round hat covered with green, showing that it was lined within with
steel. Wilfred recognised it indeed as a light Japanese or Chinese helmet torn
down from a trophy that hung in the old family hall.
“It was the first
hat to hand,” explained his brother airily; “always the nearest hat—and the
nearest woman.”
“The blacksmith
is away at Greenford,” said Wilfred quietly; “the time of his return is
unsettled.”
And with that he
turned and went into the church with bowed head, crossing himself like one who
wishes to be quit of an unclean spirit. He was anxious to forget such grossness
in the cool twilight of his tall Gothic cloisters; but on that morning it was
fated that his still round of religious exercises should be everywhere arrested
by small shocks. As he entered the church, hitherto always empty at that hour,
a kneeling figure rose hastily to its feet and came towards the full daylight
of the doorway. When the curate saw it he stood still with surprise. For the
early worshipper was none other than the village idiot, a nephew of the
blacksmith, one who neither would nor could care for the church or for anything
else. He was always called “Mad Joe,” and seemed to have no other name; he was
a dark, strong, slouching lad, with a heavy white face, dark straight hair, and
a mouth always open. As he passed the priest, his moon-calf countenance gave no
hint of what he had been doing or thinking of. He had never been known to pray
before. What sort of prayers was he saying now? Extraordinary prayers surely.
Wilfred Bohun
stood rooted to the spot long enough to see the idiot go out into the sunshine,
and even to see his dissolute brother hail him with a sort of avuncular
jocularity. The last thing he saw was the colonel throwing pennies at the open
mouth of Joe, with the serious appearance of trying to hit it.
This ugly sunlit
picture of the stupidity and cruelty of the earth sent the ascetic finally to
his prayers for purification and new thoughts. He went up to a pew in the
gallery, which brought him under a coloured window which he loved and always
quieted his spirit; a blue window with an angel carrying lilies. There he began
to think less about the half-wit, with his livid face and mouth like a fish. He
began to think less of his evil brother, pacing like a lean lion in his
horrible hunger. He sank deeper and deeper into those cold and sweet colours of
silver blossoms and sapphire sky.
In this place
half an hour afterwards he was found by Gibbs, the village cobbler, who had
been sent for him in some haste. He got to his feet with promptitude, for he
knew that no small matter would have brought Gibbs into such a place at all. The
cobbler was, as in many villages, an atheist, and his appearance in church was
a shade more extraordinary than Mad Joe's. It was a morning of theological
enigmas.
“What is it?”
asked Wilfred Bohun rather stiffly, but putting out a trembling hand for his
hat.
The atheist spoke
in a tone that, coming from him, was quite startlingly respectful, and even, as
it were, huskily sympathetic.
“You must excuse
me, sir,” he said in a hoarse whisper, “but we didn't think it right not to let
you know at once. I'm afraid a rather dreadful thing has happened, sir. I'm
afraid your brother—”
Wilfred clenched
his frail hands. “What devilry has he done now?” he cried in voluntary passion.
“Why, sir,” said
the cobbler, coughing, “I'm afraid he's done nothing, and won't do anything.
I'm afraid he's done for. You had really better come down, sir.”
The curate
followed the cobbler down a short winding stair which brought them out at an
entrance rather higher than the street. Bohun saw the tragedy in one glance,
flat underneath him like a plan. In the yard of the smithy were standing five
or six men mostly in black, one in an inspector's uniform. They included the
doctor, the Presbyterian minister, and the priest from the Roman Catholic
chapel, to which the blacksmith's wife belonged. The latter was speaking to
her, indeed, very rapidly, in an undertone, as she, a magnificent woman with
red-gold hair, was sobbing blindly on a bench. Between these two groups, and
just clear of the main heap of hammers, lay a man in evening dress, spread-eagled
and flat on his face. From the height above Wilfred could have sworn to every
item of his costume and appearance, down to the Bohun rings upon his fingers;
but the skull was only a hideous splash, like a star of blackness and blood.
Wilfred Bohun
gave but one glance, and ran down the steps into the yard. The doctor, who was
the family physician, saluted him, but he scarcely took any notice. He could
only stammer out: “My brother is dead. What does it mean? What is this horrible
mystery?” There was an unhappy silence; and then the cobbler, the most
outspoken man present, answered: “Plenty of horror, sir,” he said; “but not
much mystery.”
“What do you
mean?” asked Wilfred, with a white face.
“It's plain
enough,” answered Gibbs. “There is only one man for forty miles round that
could have struck such a blow as that, and he's the man that had most reason
to.”
“We must not
prejudge anything,” put in the doctor, a tall, black-bearded man, rather
nervously; “but it is competent for me to corroborate what Mr. Gibbs says about
the nature of the blow, sir; it is an incredible blow. Mr. Gibbs says that only
one man in this district could have done it. I should have said myself that
nobody could have done it.”
A shudder of
superstition went through the slight figure of the curate. “I can hardly
understand,” he said.
“Mr. Bohun,” said
the doctor in a low voice, “metaphors literally fail me. It is inadequate to
say that the skull was smashed to bits like an eggshell. Fragments of bone were
driven into the body and the ground like bullets into a mud wall. It was the
hand of a giant.”
He was silent a
moment, looking grimly through his glasses; then he added: “The thing has one
advantage—that it clears most people of suspicion at one stroke. If you or I or
any normally made man in the country were accused of this crime, we should be
acquitted as an infant would be acquitted of stealing the Nelson column.”
“That's what I
say,” repeated the cobbler obstinately; “there's only one man that could have
done it, and he's the man that would have done it. Where's Simeon Barnes, the
blacksmith?”
“He's over at
Greenford,” faltered the curate.
“More likely over
in France,” muttered the cobbler.
“No; he is in
neither of those places,” said a small and colourless voice, which came from
the little Roman priest who had joined the group. “As a matter of fact, he is
coming up the road at this moment.”
The little priest
was not an interesting man to look at, having stubbly brown hair and a round
and stolid face. But if he had been as splendid as Apollo no one would have
looked at him at that moment. Everyone turned round and peered at the pathway
which wound across the plain below, along which was indeed walking, at his own
huge stride and with a hammer on his shoulder, Simeon the smith. He was a bony
and gigantic man, with deep, dark, sinister eyes and a dark chin beard. He was
walking and talking quietly with two other men; and though he was never
specially cheerful, he seemed quite at his ease.
“My God!” cried
the atheistic cobbler, “and there's the hammer he did it with.”
“No,” said the
inspector, a sensible-looking man with a sandy moustache, speaking for the
first time. “There's the hammer he did it with over there by the church wall. We
have left it and the body exactly as they are.”
All glanced round
and the short priest went across and looked down in silence at the tool where
it lay. It was one of the smallest and the lightest of the hammers, and would
not have caught the eye among the rest; but on the iron edge of it were blood
and yellow hair.
After a silence
the short priest spoke without looking up, and there was a new note in his dull
voice. “Mr. Gibbs was hardly right,” he said, “in saying that there is no
mystery. There is at least the mystery of why so big a man should attempt so
big a blow with so little a hammer.”
“Oh, never mind
that,” cried Gibbs, in a fever. “What are we to do with Simeon Barnes?”
“Leave him
alone,” said the priest quietly. “He is coming here of himself. I know those
two men with him. They are very good fellows from Greenford, and they have come
over about the Presbyterian chapel.”
Even as he spoke
the tall smith swung round the corner of the church, and strode into his own
yard. Then he stood there quite still, and the hammer fell from his hand. The
inspector, who had preserved impenetrable propriety, immediately went up to
him.
“I won't ask you,
Mr. Barnes,” he said, “whether you know anything about what has happened here.
You are not bound to say. I hope you don't know, and that you will be able to
prove it. But I must go through the form of arresting you in the King's name
for the murder of Colonel Norman Bohun.”
“You are not
bound to say anything,” said the cobbler in officious excitement. “They've got
to prove everything. They haven't proved yet that it is Colonel Bohun, with the
head all smashed up like that.”
“That won't
wash,” said the doctor aside to the priest. “That's out of the detective
stories. I was the colonel's medical man, and I knew his body better than he
did. He had very fine hands, but quite peculiar ones. The second and third
fingers were the same length. Oh, that's the colonel right enough.”
As he glanced at
the brained corpse upon the ground the iron eyes of the motionless blacksmith
followed them and rested there also.
“Is Colonel Bohun
dead?” said the smith quite calmly. “Then he's damned.”
“Don't say
anything! Oh, don't say anything,” cried the atheist cobbler, dancing about in
an ecstasy of admiration of the English legal system. For no man is such a
legalist as the good Secularist.
The blacksmith
turned on him over his shoulder the august face of a fanatic.
“It's well for
you infidels to dodge like foxes because the world's law favours you,” he said;
“but God guards His own in His pocket, as you shall see this day.”
Then he pointed
to the colonel and said: “When did this dog die in his sins?”
“Moderate your
language,” said the doctor.
“Moderate the
Bible's language, and I'll moderate mine. When did he die?”
“I saw him alive
at six o'clock this morning,” stammered Wilfred Bohun.
“God is good,”
said the smith. “Mr. Inspector, I have not the slightest objection to being
arrested. It is you who may object to arresting me. I don't mind leaving the
court without a stain on my character. You do mind perhaps leaving the court
with a bad set-back in your career.”
The solid
inspector for the first time looked at the blacksmith with a lively eye; as did
everybody else, except the short, strange priest, who was still looking down at
the little hammer that had dealt the dreadful blow.
“There are two
men standing outside this shop,” went on the blacksmith with ponderous
lucidity, “good tradesmen in Greenford whom you all know, who will swear that
they saw me from before midnight till daybreak and long after in the committee
room of our Revival Mission, which sits all night, we save souls so fast. In
Greenford itself twenty people could swear to me for all that time. If I were a
heathen, Mr. Inspector, I would let you walk on to your downfall. But as a
Christian man I feel bound to give you your chance, and ask you whether you
will hear my alibi now or in court.”
The inspector
seemed for the first time disturbed, and said, “Of course I should be glad to
clear you altogether now.”
The smith walked
out of his yard with the same long and easy stride, and returned to his two
friends from Greenford, who were indeed friends of nearly everyone present.
Each of them said a few words which no one ever thought of disbelieving. When
they had spoken, the innocence of Simeon stood up as solid as the great church
above them.
One of those
silences struck the group which are more strange and insufferable than any
speech. Madly, in order to make conversation, the curate said to the Catholic
priest:
“You seem very
much interested in that hammer, Father Brown.”
“Yes, I am,” said
Father Brown; “why is it such a small hammer?”
The doctor swung
round on him.
“By George,
that's true,” he cried; “who would use a little hammer with ten larger hammers
lying about?”
Then he lowered
his voice in the curate's ear and said: “Only the kind of person that can't
lift a large hammer. It is not a question of force or courage between the
sexes. It's a question of lifting power in the shoulders. A bold woman could
commit ten murders with a light hammer and never turn a hair. She could not
kill a beetle with a heavy one.”
Wilfred Bohun was
staring at him with a sort of hypnotised horror, while Father Brown listened
with his head a little on one side, really interested and attentive. The doctor
went on with more hissing emphasis:
“Why do these
idiots always assume that the only person who hates the wife's lover is the
wife's husband? Nine times out of ten the person who most hates the wife's
lover is the wife. Who knows what insolence or treachery he had shown her—look
there!”
He made a
momentary gesture towards the red-haired woman on the bench. She had lifted her
head at last and the tears were drying on her splendid face. But the eyes were
fixed on the corpse with an electric glare that had in it something of idiocy.
The Rev. Wilfred
Bohun made a limp gesture as if waving away all desire to know; but Father
Brown, dusting off his sleeve some ashes blown from the furnace, spoke in his
indifferent way.
“You are like so
many doctors,” he said; “your mental science is really suggestive. It is your
physical science that is utterly impossible. I agree that the woman wants to
kill the co-respondent much more than the petitioner does. And I agree that a
woman will always pick up a small hammer instead of a big one. But the
difficulty is one of physical impossibility. No woman ever born could have
smashed a man's skull out flat like that.” Then he added reflectively, after a
pause: “These people haven't grasped the whole of it. The man was actually
wearing an iron helmet, and the blow scattered it like broken glass. Look at
that woman. Look at her arms.”
Silence held them
all up again, and then the doctor said rather sulkily: “Well, I may be wrong;
there are objections to everything. But I stick to the main point. No man but
an idiot would pick up that little hammer if he could use a big hammer.”
With that the
lean and quivering hands of Wilfred Bohun went up to his head and seemed to
clutch his scanty yellow hair. After an instant they dropped, and he cried:
“That was the word I wanted; you have said the word.”
Then he
continued, mastering his discomposure: “The words you said were, “No man but an
idiot would pick up the small hammer. '”
“Yes,” said the
doctor. “Well?”
“Well,” said the
curate, “no man but an idiot did.” The rest stared at him with eyes arrested
and riveted, and he went on in a febrile and feminine agitation.
“I am a priest,”
he cried unsteadily, “and a priest should be no shedder of blood. I—I mean that
he should bring no one to the gallows. And I thank God that I see the criminal
clearly now—because he is a criminal who cannot be brought to the gallows.”
“You will not
denounce him?” inquired the doctor.
“He would not be
hanged if I did denounce him,” answered Wilfred with a wild but curiously happy
smile. “When I went into the church this morning I found a madman praying
there—that poor Joe, who has been wrong all his life. God knows what he prayed;
but with such strange folk it is not incredible to suppose that their prayers
are all upside down. Very likely a lunatic would pray before killing a man.
When I last saw poor Joe he was with my brother. My brother was mocking him.”
“By Jove!” cried
the doctor, “this is talking at last. But how do you explain—”
The Rev. Wilfred
was almost trembling with the excitement of his own glimpse of the truth.
“Don't you see; don't you see,” he cried feverishly; “that is the only theory
that covers both the queer things, that answers both the riddles. The two
riddles are the little hammer and the big blow. The smith might have struck the
big blow, but would not have chosen the little hammer. His wife would have
chosen the little hammer, but she could not have struck the big blow. But the
madman might have done both. As for the little hammer—why, he was mad and might
have picked up anything. And for the big blow, have you never heard, doctor,
that a maniac in his paroxysm may have the strength of ten men?”
The doctor drew a
deep breath and then said, “By golly, I believe you've got it.”
Father Brown had
fixed his eyes on the speaker so long and steadily as to prove that his large
grey, ox-like eyes were not quite so insignificant as the rest of his face.
When silence had fallen he said with marked respect: “Mr. Bohun, yours is the
only theory yet propounded which holds water every way and is essentially
unassailable. I think, therefore, that you deserve to be told, on my positive
knowledge, that it is not the true one.” And with that the old little man
walked away and stared again at the hammer.
“That fellow
seems to know more than he ought to,” whispered the doctor peevishly to
Wilfred. “Those popish priests are deucedly sly.”
“No, no,” said
Bohun, with a sort of wild fatigue. “It was the lunatic. It was the lunatic.”
The group of the
two clerics and the doctor had fallen away from the more official group
containing the inspector and the man he had arrested. Now, however, that their
own party had broken up, they heard voices from the others. The priest looked
up quietly and then looked down again as he heard the blacksmith say in a loud
voice:
“I hope I've
convinced you, Mr. Inspector. I'm a strong man, as you say, but I couldn't have
flung my hammer bang here from Greenford. My hammer hasn't got wings that it
should come flying half a mile over hedges and fields.”
The inspector
laughed amicably and said: “No, I think you can be considered out of it, though
it's one of the rummiest coincidences I ever saw. I can only ask you to give us
all the assistance you can in finding a man as big and strong as yourself. By
George! you might be useful, if only to hold him! I suppose you yourself have
no guess at the man?”
“I may have a
guess,” said the pale smith, “but it is not at a man.” Then, seeing the scared
eyes turn towards his wife on the bench, he put his huge hand on her shoulder
and said: “Nor a woman either.”
“What do you
mean?” asked the inspector jocularly. “You don't think cows use hammers, do
you?”
“I think no thing
of flesh held that hammer,” said the blacksmith in a stifled voice; “mortally
speaking, I think the man died alone.”
Wilfred made a
sudden forward movement and peered at him with burning eyes.
“Do you mean to
say, Barnes,” came the sharp voice of the cobbler, “that the hammer jumped up
of itself and knocked the man down?”
“Oh, you
gentlemen may stare and snigger,” cried Simeon; “you clergymen who tell us on
Sunday in what a stillness the Lord smote Sennacherib. I believe that One who
walks invisible in every house defended the honour of mine, and laid the
defiler dead before the door of it. I believe the force in that blow was just the
force there is in earthquakes, and no force less.”
Wilfred said,
with a voice utterly undescribable: “I told Norman myself to beware of the
thunderbolt.”
“That agent is
outside my jurisdiction,” said the inspector with a slight smile.
“You are not
outside His,” answered the smith; “see you to it,” and, turning his broad back,
he went into the house.
The shaken
Wilfred was led away by Father Brown, who had an easy and friendly way with
him. “Let us get out of this horrid place, Mr. Bohun,” he said. “May I look
inside your church? I hear it's one of the oldest in England. We take some
interest, you know,” he added with a comical grimace, “in old English
churches.”
Wilfred Bohun did
not smile, for humour was never his strong point. But he nodded rather eagerly,
being only too ready to explain the Gothic splendours to someone more likely to
be sympathetic than the Presbyterian blacksmith or the atheist cobbler.
“By all means,”
he said; “let us go in at this side.” And he led the way into the high side
entrance at the top of the flight of steps. Father Brown was mounting the first
step to follow him when he felt a hand on his shoulder, and turned to behold
the dark, thin figure of the doctor, his face darker yet with suspicion.
“Sir,” said the
physician harshly, “you appear to know some secrets in this black business. May
I ask if you are going to keep them to yourself?”
“Why, doctor,”
answered the priest, smiling quite pleasantly, “there is one very good reason
why a man of my trade should keep things to himself when he is not sure of
them, and that is that it is so constantly his duty to keep them to himself
when he is sure of them. But if you think I have been discourteously reticent
with you or anyone, I will go to the extreme limit of my custom. I will give you
two very large hints.”
“Well, sir?” said
the doctor gloomily.
“First,” said
Father Brown quietly, “the thing is quite in your own province. It is a matter
of physical science. The blacksmith is mistaken, not perhaps in saying that the
blow was divine, but certainly in saying that it came by a miracle. It was no
miracle, doctor, except in so far as man is himself a miracle, with his strange
and wicked and yet half-heroic heart. The force that smashed that skull was a
force well known to scientists— one of the most frequently debated of the laws
of nature.”
The doctor, who
was looking at him with frowning intentness, only said: “And the other hint?”
“The other hint
is this,” said the priest. “Do you remember the blacksmith, though he believes
in miracles, talking scornfully of the impossible fairy tale that his hammer
had wings and flew half a mile across country?”
“Yes,” said the
doctor, “I remember that.”
“Well,” added
Father Brown, with a broad smile, “that fairy tale was the nearest thing to the
real truth that has been said today.” And with that he turned his back and
stumped up the steps after the curate.
The Reverend
Wilfred, who had been waiting for him, pale and impatient, as if this little
delay were the last straw for his nerves, led him immediately to his favourite
corner of the church, that part of the gallery closest to the carved roof and
lit by the wonderful window with the angel. The little Latin priest explored
and admired everything exhaustively, talking cheerfully but in a low voice all
the time. When in the course of his investigation he found the side exit and
the winding stair down which Wilfred had rushed to find his brother dead,
Father Brown ran not down but up, with the agility of a monkey, and his clear
voice came from an outer platform above.
“Come up here,
Mr. Bohun,” he called. “The air will do you good.”
Bohun followed
him, and came out on a kind of stone gallery or balcony outside the building,
from which one could see the illimitable plain in which their small hill stood,
wooded away to the purple horizon and dotted with villages and farms. Clear and
square, but quite small beneath them, was the blacksmith's yard, where the
inspector still stood taking notes and the corpse still lay like a smashed fly.
“Might be the map
of the world, mightn't it?” said Father Brown.
“Yes,” said Bohun
very gravely, and nodded his head.
Immediately
beneath and about them the lines of the Gothic building plunged outwards into
the void with a sickening swiftness akin to suicide. There is that element of
Titan energy in the architecture of the Middle Ages that, from whatever aspect
it be seen, it always seems to be rushing away, like the strong back of some
maddened horse. This church was hewn out of ancient and silent stone, bearded
with old fungoids and stained with the nests of birds. And yet, when they saw
it from below, it sprang like a fountain at the stars; and when they saw it, as
now, from above, it poured like a cataract into a voiceless pit. For these two
men on the tower were left alone with the most terrible aspect of Gothic; the
monstrous foreshortening and disproportion, the dizzy perspectives, the
glimpses of great things small and small things great; a topsy-turvydom of
stone in the mid-air. Details of stone, enormous by their proximity, were
relieved against a pattern of fields and farms, pygmy in their distance. A
carved bird or beast at a corner seemed like some vast walking or flying dragon
wasting the pastures and villages below. The whole atmosphere was dizzy and
dangerous, as if men were upheld in air amid the gyrating wings of colossal
genii; and the whole of that old church, as tall and rich as a cathedral,
seemed to sit upon the sunlit country like a cloudburst.
“I think there is
something rather dangerous about standing on these high places even to pray,”
said Father Brown. “Heights were made to be looked at, not to be looked from.”
“Do you mean that
one may fall over,” asked Wilfred.
“I mean that
one's soul may fall if one's body doesn't,” said the other priest.
“I scarcely
understand you,” remarked Bohun indistinctly.
“Look at that
blacksmith, for instance,” went on Father Brown calmly; “a good man, but not a
Christian—hard, imperious, unforgiving. Well, his Scotch religion was made up
by men who prayed on hills and high crags, and learnt to look down on the world
more than to look up at heaven. Humility is the mother of giants. One sees
great things from the valley; only small things from the peak.”
“But he—he didn't
do it,” said Bohun tremulously.
“No,” said the
other in an odd voice; “we know he didn't do it.”
After a moment he
resumed, looking tranquilly out over the plain with his pale grey eyes. “I knew
a man,” he said, “who began by worshipping with others before the altar, but
who grew fond of high and lonely places to pray from, corners or niches in the
belfry or the spire. And once in one of those dizzy places, where the whole
world seemed to turn under him like a wheel, his brain turned also, and he
fancied he was God. So that, though he was a good man, he committed a great
crime.”
Wilfred's face
was turned away, but his bony hands turned blue and white as they tightened on
the parapet of stone.
“He thought it
was given to him to judge the world and strike down the sinner. He would never
have had such a thought if he had been kneeling with other men upon a floor.
But he saw all men walking about like insects. He saw one especially strutting
just below him, insolent and evident by a bright green hat—a poisonous insect.”
Rooks cawed round
the corners of the belfry; but there was no other sound till Father Brown went
on.
“This also
tempted him, that he had in his hand one of the most awful engines of nature; I
mean gravitation, that mad and quickening rush by which all earth's creatures
fly back to her heart when released. See, the inspector is strutting just below
us in the smithy. If I were to toss a pebble over this parapet it would be
something like a bullet by the time it struck him. If I were to drop a hammer—
even a small hammer—”
Wilfred Bohun
threw one leg over the parapet, and Father Brown had him in a minute by the
collar.
“Not by that
door,” he said quite gently; “that door leads to hell.”
Bohun staggered
back against the wall, and stared at him with frightful eyes.
“How do you know
all this?” he cried. “Are you a devil?”
“I am a man,”
answered Father Brown gravely; “and therefore have all devils in my heart.
Listen to me,” he said after a short pause. “I know what you did—at least, I
can guess the great part of it. When you left your brother you were racked with
no unrighteous rage, to the extent even that you snatched up a small hammer,
half inclined to kill him with his foulness on his mouth. Recoiling, you thrust
it under your buttoned coat instead, and rushed into the church. You pray
wildly in many places, under the angel window, upon the platform above, and a
higher platform still, from which you could see the colonel's Eastern hat like
the back of a green beetle crawling about. Then something snapped in your soul,
and you let God's thunderbolt fall.”
Wilfred put a
weak hand to his head, and asked in a low voice: “How did you know that his hat
looked like a green beetle?”
“Oh, that,” said
the other with the shadow of a smile, “that was common sense. But hear me
further. I say I know all this; but no one else shall know it. The next step is
for you; I shall take no more steps; I will seal this with the seal of
confession. If you ask me why, there are many reasons, and only one that
concerns you. I leave things to you because you have not yet gone very far
wrong, as assassins go. You did not help to fix the crime on the smith when it
was easy; or on his wife, when that was easy. You tried to fix it on the
imbecile because you knew that he could not suffer. That was one of the gleams
that it is my business to find in assassins. And now come down into the
village, and go your own way as free as the wind; for I have said my last
word.”
They went down
the winding stairs in utter silence, and came out into the sunlight by the
smithy. Wilfred Bohun carefully unlatched the wooden gate of the yard, and
going up to the inspector, said: “I wish to give myself up; I have killed my
brother.”
The Eye of Apollo
That singular
smoky sparkle, at once a confusion and a transparency, which is the strange
secret of the Thames, was changing more and more from its grey to its
glittering extreme as the sun climbed to the zenith over Westminster, and two
men crossed Westminster Bridge. One man was very tall and the other very short;
they might even have been fantastically compared to the arrogant clock-tower of
Parliament and the humbler humped shoulders of the Abbey, for the short man was
in clerical dress. The official description of the tall man was M. Hercule
Flambeau, private detective, and he was going to his new offices in a new pile
of flats facing the Abbey entrance. The official description of the short man
was the Reverend J. Brown, attached to St. Francis Xavier's Church, Camberwell,
and he was coming from a Camberwell deathbed to see the new offices of his
friend.
The building was
American in its sky-scraping altitude, and American also in the oiled
elaboration of its machinery of telephones and lifts. But it was barely
finished and still understaffed; only three tenants had moved in; the office
just above Flambeau was occupied, as also was the office just below him; the
two floors above that and the three floors below were entirely bare. But the
first glance at the new tower of flats caught something much more arresting.
Save for a few relics of scaffolding, the one glaring object was erected
outside the office just above Flambeau's. It was an enormous gilt effigy of the
human eye, surrounded with rays of gold, and taking up as much room as two or
three of the office windows.
“What on earth is
that?” asked Father Brown, and stood still. “Oh, a new religion,” said
Flambeau, laughing; “one of those new religions that forgive your sins by
saying you never had any. Rather like Christian Science, I should think. The
fact is that a fellow calling himself Kalon (I don't know what his name is,
except that it can't be that) has taken the flat just above me. I have two lady
typewriters underneath me, and this enthusiastic old humbug on top. He calls
himself the New Priest of Apollo, and he worships the sun.”
“Let him look
out,” said Father Brown. “The sun was the cruellest of all the gods. But what
does that monstrous eye mean?”
“As I understand
it, it is a theory of theirs,” answered Flambeau, “that a man can endure
anything if his mind is quite steady. Their two great symbols are the sun and
the open eye; for they say that if a man were really healthy he could stare at
the sun.”
“If a man were
really healthy,” said Father Brown, “he would not bother to stare at it.”
“Well, that's all
I can tell you about the new religion,” went on Flambeau carelessly. “It
claims, of course, that it can cure all physical diseases.”
“Can it cure the
one spiritual disease?” asked Father Brown, with a serious curiosity.
“And what is the
one spiritual disease?” asked Flambeau, smiling.
“Oh, thinking one
is quite well,” said his friend.
Flambeau was more
interested in the quiet little office below him than in the flamboyant temple
above. He was a lucid Southerner, incapable of conceiving himself as anything
but a Catholic or an atheist; and new religions of a bright and pallid sort
were not much in his line. But humanity was always in his line, especially when
it was good-looking; moreover, the ladies downstairs were characters in their
way. The office was kept by two sisters, both slight and dark, one of them tall
and striking. She had a dark, eager and aquiline profile, and was one of those
women whom one always thinks of in profile, as of the clean-cut edge of some
weapon. She seemed to cleave her way through life. She had eyes of startling
brilliancy, but it was the brilliancy of steel rather than of diamonds; and her
straight, slim figure was a shade too stiff for its grace. Her younger sister
was like her shortened shadow, a little greyer, paler, and more insignificant.
They both wore a business-like black, with little masculine cuffs and collars.
There are thousands of such curt, strenuous ladies in the offices of London,
but the interest of these lay rather in their real than their apparent
position.
For Pauline
Stacey, the elder, was actually the heiress of a crest and half a county, as
well as great wealth; she had been brought up in castles and gardens, before a
frigid fierceness (peculiar to the modern woman) had driven her to what she
considered a harsher and a higher existence. She had not, indeed, surrendered
her money; in that there would have been a romantic or monkish abandon quite
alien to her masterful utilitarianism. She held her wealth, she would say, for
use upon practical social objects. Part of it she had put into her business,
the nucleus of a model typewriting emporium; part of it was distributed in
various leagues and causes for the advancement of such work among women. How
far Joan, her sister and partner, shared this slightly prosaic idealism no one
could be very sure. But she followed her leader with a dog-like affection which
was somehow more attractive, with its touch of tragedy, than the hard, high
spirits of the elder. For Pauline Stacey had nothing to say to tragedy; she was
understood to deny its existence.
Her rigid
rapidity and cold impatience had amused Flambeau very much on the first
occasion of his entering the flats. He had lingered outside the lift in the
entrance hall waiting for the lift-boy, who generally conducts strangers to the
various floors. But this bright-eyed falcon of a girl had openly refused to
endure such official delay. She said sharply that she knew all about the lift,
and was not dependent on boys—or men either. Though her flat was only three
floors above, she managed in the few seconds of ascent to give Flambeau a great
many of her fundamental views in an off-hand manner; they were to the general
effect that she was a modern working woman and loved modern working machinery.
Her bright black eyes blazed with abstract anger against those who rebuke
mechanic science and ask for the return of romance. Everyone, she said, ought
to be able to manage machines, just as she could manage the lift. She seemed
almost to resent the fact of Flambeau opening the lift-door for her; and that
gentleman went up to his own apartments smiling with somewhat mingled feelings
at the memory of such spit-fire self-dependence.
She certainly had
a temper, of a snappy, practical sort; the gestures of her thin, elegant hands
were abrupt or even destructive. Once Flambeau entered her office on some
typewriting business, and found she had just flung a pair of spectacles
belonging to her sister into the middle of the floor and stamped on them. She
was already in the rapids of an ethical tirade about the “sickly medical
notions” and the morbid admission of weakness implied in such an apparatus. She
dared her sister to bring such artificial, unhealthy rubbish into the place
again. She asked if she was expected to wear wooden legs or false hair or glass
eyes; and as she spoke her eyes sparkled like the terrible crystal.
Flambeau, quite
bewildered with this fanaticism, could not refrain from asking Miss Pauline
(with direct French logic) why a pair of spectacles was a more morbid sign of
weakness than a lift, and why, if science might help us in the one effort, it
might not help us in the other.
“That is so
different,” said Pauline Stacey, loftily. “Batteries and motors and all those
things are marks of the force of man—yes, Mr. Flambeau, and the force of woman,
too! We shall take our turn at these great engines that devour distance and
defy time. That is high and splendid—that is really science. But these nasty
props and plasters the doctors sell—why, they are just badges of poltroonery.
Doctors stick on legs and arms as if we were born cripples and sick slaves. But
I was free-born, Mr. Flambeau! People only think they need these things because
they have been trained in fear instead of being trained in power and courage,
just as the silly nurses tell children not to stare at the sun, and so they
can't do it without blinking. But why among the stars should there be one star
I may not see? The sun is not my master, and I will open my eyes and stare at
him whenever I choose.”
“Your eyes,” said
Flambeau, with a foreign bow, “will dazzle the sun.” He took pleasure in
complimenting this strange stiff beauty, partly because it threw her a little
off her balance. But as he went upstairs to his floor he drew a deep breath and
whistled, saying to himself: “So she has got into the hands of that conjurer
upstairs with his golden eye.” For, little as he knew or cared about the new
religion of Kalon, he had heard of his special notion about sun-gazing.
He soon
discovered that the spiritual bond between the floors above and below him was
close and increasing. The man who called himself Kalon was a magnificent
creature, worthy, in a physical sense, to be the pontiff of Apollo. He was
nearly as tall even as Flambeau, and very much better looking, with a golden
beard, strong blue eyes, and a mane flung back like a lion's. In structure he
was the blonde beast of Nietzsche, but all this animal beauty was heightened,
brightened and softened by genuine intellect and spirituality. If he looked
like one of the great Saxon kings, he looked like one of the kings that were
also saints. And this despite the cockney incongruity of his surroundings; the
fact that he had an office half-way up a building in Victoria Street; that the
clerk (a commonplace youth in cuffs and collars) sat in the outer room, between
him and the corridor; that his name was on a brass plate, and the gilt emblem
of his creed hung above his street, like the advertisement of an oculist. All
this vulgarity could not take away from the man called Kalon the vivid
oppression and inspiration that came from his soul and body. When all was said,
a man in the presence of this quack did feel in the presence of a great man.
Even in the loose jacket-suit of linen that he wore as a workshop dress in his
office he was a fascinating and formidable figure; and when robed in the white
vestments and crowned with the golden circlet, in which he daily saluted the
sun, he really looked so splendid that the laughter of the street people
sometimes died suddenly on their lips. For three times in the day the new
sun-worshipper went out on his little balcony, in the face of all Westminster,
to say some litany to his shining lord: once at daybreak, once at sunset, and
once at the shock of noon. And it was while the shock of noon still shook
faintly from the towers of Parliament and parish church that Father Brown, the
friend of Flambeau, first looked up and saw the white priest of Apollo.
Flambeau had seen
quite enough of these daily salutations of Phoebus, and plunged into the porch
of the tall building without even looking for his clerical friend to follow.
But Father Brown, whether from a professional interest in ritual or a strong
individual interest in tomfoolery, stopped and stared up at the balcony of the
sun-worshipper, just as he might have stopped and stared up at a Punch and
Judy. Kalon the Prophet was already erect, with argent garments and uplifted
hands, and the sound of his strangely penetrating voice could be heard all the
way down the busy street uttering his solar litany. He was already in the
middle of it; his eyes were fixed upon the flaming disc. It is doubtful if he
saw anything or anyone on this earth; it is substantially certain that he did
not see a stunted, round-faced priest who, in the crowd below, looked up at him
with blinking eyes. That was perhaps the most startling difference between even
these two far divided men. Father Brown could not look at anything without
blinking; but the priest of Apollo could look on the blaze at noon without a
quiver of the eyelid.
“O sun,” cried
the prophet, “O star that art too great to be allowed among the stars! O
fountain that flowest quietly in that secret spot that is called space. White
Father of all white unwearied things, white flames and white flowers and white peaks.
Father, who art more innocent than all thy most innocent and quiet children;
primal purity, into the peace of which—”
A rush and crash
like the reversed rush of a rocket was cloven with a strident and incessant
yelling. Five people rushed into the gate of the mansions as three people
rushed out, and for an instant they all deafened each other. The sense of some
utterly abrupt horror seemed for a moment to fill half the street with bad
news— bad news that was all the worse because no one knew what it was. Two
figures remained still after the crash of commotion: the fair priest of Apollo
on the balcony above, and the ugly priest of Christ below him.
At last the tall
figure and titanic energy of Flambeau appeared in the doorway of the mansions
and dominated the little mob. Talking at the top of his voice like a fog-horn,
he told somebody or anybody to go for a surgeon; and as he turned back into the
dark and thronged entrance his friend Father Brown dipped in insignificantly
after him. Even as he ducked and dived through the crowd he could still hear
the magnificent melody and monotony of the solar priest still calling on the
happy god who is the friend of fountains and flowers.
Father Brown
found Flambeau and some six other people standing round the enclosed space into
which the lift commonly descended. But the lift had not descended. Something
else had descended; something that ought to have come by a lift.
For the last four
minutes Flambeau had looked down on it; had seen the brained and bleeding
figure of that beautiful woman who denied the existence of tragedy. He had
never had the slightest doubt that it was Pauline Stacey; and, though he had
sent for a doctor, he had not the slightest doubt that she was dead.
He could not
remember for certain whether he had liked her or disliked her; there was so
much both to like and dislike. But she had been a person to him, and the
unbearable pathos of details and habit stabbed him with all the small daggers
of bereavement. He remembered her pretty face and priggish speeches with a
sudden secret vividness which is all the bitterness of death. In an instant
like a bolt from the blue, like a thunderbolt from nowhere, that beautiful and
defiant body had been dashed down the open well of the lift to death at the
bottom. Was it suicide? With so insolent an optimist it seemed impossible. Was
it murder? But who was there in those hardly inhabited flats to murder anybody?
In a rush of raucous words, which he meant to be strong and suddenly found
weak, he asked where was that fellow Kalon. A voice, habitually heavy, quiet
and full, assured him that Kalon for the last fifteen minutes had been away up
on his balcony worshipping his god. When Flambeau heard the voice, and felt the
hand of Father Brown, he turned his swarthy face and said abruptly:
“Then, if he has
been up there all the time, who can have done it?”
“Perhaps,” said
the other, “we might go upstairs and find out. We have half an hour before the
police will move.”
Leaving the body
of the slain heiress in charge of the surgeons, Flambeau dashed up the stairs
to the typewriting office, found it utterly empty, and then dashed up to his
own. Having entered that, he abruptly returned with a new and white face to his
friend.
“Her sister,” he
said, with an unpleasant seriousness, “her sister seems to have gone out for a
walk.”
Father Brown
nodded. “Or, she may have gone up to the office of that sun man,” he said. “If
I were you I should just verify that, and then let us all talk it over in your
office. No,” he added suddenly, as if remembering something, “shall I ever get
over that stupidity of mine? Of course, in their office downstairs.”
Flambeau stared;
but he followed the little father downstairs to the empty flat of the Staceys,
where that impenetrable pastor took a large red-leather chair in the very
entrance, from which he could see the stairs and landings, and waited. He did
not wait very long. In about four minutes three figures descended the stairs,
alike only in their solemnity. The first was Joan Stacey, the sister of the
dead woman— evidently she had been upstairs in the temporary temple of Apollo;
the second was the priest of Apollo himself, his litany finished, sweeping down
the empty stairs in utter magnificence— something in his white robes, beard and
parted hair had the look of Dore's Christ leaving the Pretorium; the third was
Flambeau, black browed and somewhat bewildered.
Miss Joan Stacey,
dark, with a drawn face and hair prematurely touched with grey, walked straight
to her own desk and set out her papers with a practical flap. The mere action
rallied everyone else to sanity. If Miss Joan Stacey was a criminal, she was a
cool one. Father Brown regarded her for some time with an odd little smile, and
then, without taking his eyes off her, addressed himself to somebody else.
“Prophet,” he
said, presumably addressing Kalon, “I wish you would tell me a lot about your
religion.”
“I shall be proud
to do it,” said Kalon, inclining his still crowned head, “but I am not sure
that I understand.”
“Why, it's like
this,” said Father Brown, in his frankly doubtful way: “We are taught that if a
man has really bad first principles, that must be partly his fault. But, for
all that, we can make some difference between a man who insults his quite clear
conscience and a man with a conscience more or less clouded with sophistries.
Now, do you really think that murder is wrong at all?”
“Is this an
accusation?” asked Kalon very quietly.
“No,” answered
Brown, equally gently, “it is the speech for the defence.”
In the long and
startled stillness of the room the prophet of Apollo slowly rose; and really it
was like the rising of the sun. He filled that room with his light and life in
such a manner that a man felt he could as easily have filled Salisbury Plain. His
robed form seemed to hang the whole room with classic draperies; his epic
gesture seemed to extend it into grander perspectives, till the little black
figure of the modern cleric seemed to be a fault and an intrusion, a round,
black blot upon some splendour of Hellas.
“We meet at last,
Caiaphas,” said the prophet. “Your church and mine are the only realities on
this earth. I adore the sun, and you the darkening of the sun; you are the
priest of the dying and I of the living God. Your present work of suspicion and
slander is worthy of your coat and creed. All your church is but a black
police; you are only spies and detectives seeking to tear from men confessions
of guilt, whether by treachery or torture. You would convict men of crime, I
would convict them of innocence. You would convince them of sin, I would
convince them of virtue.
“Reader of the
books of evil, one more word before I blow away your baseless nightmares for
ever. Not even faintly could you understand how little I care whether you can
convict me or no. The things you call disgrace and horrible hanging are to me
no more than an ogre in a child's toy-book to a man once grown up. You said you
were offering the speech for the defence. I care so little for the cloudland of
this life that I will offer you the speech for the prosecution. There is but
one thing that can be said against me in this matter, and I will say it myself.
The woman that is dead was my love and my bride; not after such manner as your
tin chapels call lawful, but by a law purer and sterner than you will ever
understand. She and I walked another world from yours, and trod palaces of
crystal while you were plodding through tunnels and corridors of brick. Well, I
know that policemen, theological and otherwise, always fancy that where there
has been love there must soon be hatred; so there you have the first point made
for the prosecution. But the second point is stronger; I do not grudge it you.
Not only is it true that Pauline loved me, but it is also true that this very
morning, before she died, she wrote at that table a will leaving me and my new
church half a million. Come, where are the handcuffs? Do you suppose I care
what foolish things you do with me? Penal servitude will only be like waiting
for her at a wayside station. The gallows will only be going to her in a
headlong car.”
He spoke with the
brain-shaking authority of an orator, and Flambeau and Joan Stacey stared at
him in amazed admiration. Father Brown's face seemed to express nothing but
extreme distress; he looked at the ground with one wrinkle of pain across his
forehead. The prophet of the sun leaned easily against the mantelpiece and
resumed:
“In a few words I
have put before you the whole case against me— the only possible case against
me. In fewer words still I will blow it to pieces, so that not a trace of it
remains. As to whether I have committed this crime, the truth is in one
sentence: I could not have committed this crime. Pauline Stacey fell from this
floor to the ground at five minutes past twelve. A hundred people will go into
the witness-box and say that I was standing out upon the balcony of my own
rooms above from just before the stroke of noon to a quarter-past—the usual
period of my public prayers. My clerk (a respectable youth from Clapham, with
no sort of connection with me) will swear that he sat in my outer office all
the morning, and that no communication passed through. He will swear that I
arrived a full ten minutes before the hour, fifteen minutes before any whisper
of the accident, and that I did not leave the office or the balcony all that
time. No one ever had so complete an alibi; I could subpoena half Westminster.
I think you had better put the handcuffs away again. The case is at an end.
“But last of all,
that no breath of this idiotic suspicion remain in the air, I will tell you all
you want to know. I believe I do know how my unhappy friend came by her death.
You can, if you choose, blame me for it, or my faith and philosophy at least;
but you certainly cannot lock me up. It is well known to all students of the
higher truths that certain adepts and illuminati have in history attained the
power of levitation—that is, of being self-sustained upon the empty air. It is
but a part of that general conquest of matter which is the main element in our
occult wisdom. Poor Pauline was of an impulsive and ambitious temper. I think,
to tell the truth, she thought herself somewhat deeper in the mysteries than
she was; and she has often said to me, as we went down in the lift together,
that if one's will were strong enough, one could float down as harmlessly as a
feather. I solemnly believe that in some ecstasy of noble thoughts she
attempted the miracle. Her will, or faith, must have failed her at the crucial
instant, and the lower law of matter had its horrible revenge. There is the
whole story, gentlemen, very sad and, as you think, very presumptuous and
wicked, but certainly not criminal or in any way connected with me. In the
short-hand of the police-courts, you had better call it suicide. I shall always
call it heroic failure for the advance of science and the slow scaling of
heaven.”
It was the first
time Flambeau had ever seen Father Brown vanquished. He still sat looking at
the ground, with a painful and corrugated brow, as if in shame. It was impossible
to avoid the feeling which the prophet's winged words had fanned, that here was
a sullen, professional suspecter of men overwhelmed by a prouder and purer
spirit of natural liberty and health. At last he said, blinking as if in bodily
distress: “Well, if that is so, sir, you need do no more than take the
testamentary paper you spoke of and go. I wonder where the poor lady left it.”
“It will be over
there on her desk by the door, I think,” said Kalon, with that massive
innocence of manner that seemed to acquit him wholly. “She told me specially
she would write it this morning, and I actually saw her writing as I went up in
the lift to my own room.”
“Was her door
open then?” asked the priest, with his eye on the corner of the matting.
“Yes,” said Kalon
calmly.
“Ah! it has been
open ever since,” said the other, and resumed his silent study of the mat.
“There is a paper
over here,” said the grim Miss Joan, in a somewhat singular voice. She had
passed over to her sister's desk by the doorway, and was holding a sheet of
blue foolscap in her hand. There was a sour smile on her face that seemed unfit
for such a scene or occasion, and Flambeau looked at her with a darkening brow.
Kalon the prophet
stood away from the paper with that loyal unconsciousness that had carried him
through. But Flambeau took it out of the lady's hand, and read it with the
utmost amazement. It did, indeed, begin in the formal manner of a will, but
after the words “I give and bequeath all of which I die possessed” the writing
abruptly stopped with a set of scratches, and there was no trace of the name of
any legatee. Flambeau, in wonder, handed this truncated testament to his
clerical friend, who glanced at it and silently gave it to the priest of the
sun.
An instant
afterwards that pontiff, in his splendid sweeping draperies, had crossed the
room in two great strides, and was towering over Joan Stacey, his blue eyes
standing from his head.
“What monkey
tricks have you been playing here?” he cried. “That's not all Pauline wrote.”
They were startled
to hear him speak in quite a new voice, with a Yankee shrillness in it; all his
grandeur and good English had fallen from him like a cloak.
“That is the only
thing on her desk,” said Joan, and confronted him steadily with the same smile
of evil favour.
Of a sudden the
man broke out into blasphemies and cataracts of incredulous words. There was
something shocking about the dropping of his mask; it was like a man's real
face falling off.
“See here!” he
cried in broad American, when he was breathless with cursing, “I may be an
adventurer, but I guess you're a murderess. Yes, gentlemen, here's your death
explained, and without any levitation. The poor girl is writing a will in my
favour; her cursed sister comes in, struggles for the pen, drags her to the well,
and throws her down before she can finish it. Sakes! I reckon we want the
handcuffs after all.”
“As you have
truly remarked,” replied Joan, with ugly calm, “your clerk is a very
respectable young man, who knows the nature of an oath; and he will swear in
any court that I was up in your office arranging some typewriting work for five
minutes before and five minutes after my sister fell. Mr. Flambeau will tell
you that he found me there.”
There was a
silence.
“Why, then,”
cried Flambeau, “Pauline was alone when she fell, and it was suicide!”
“She was alone
when she fell,” said Father Brown, “but it was not suicide.”
“Then how did she
die?” asked Flambeau impatiently.
“She was
murdered.”
“But she was
alone,” objected the detective.
“She was murdered
when she was all alone,” answered the priest.
All the rest
stared at him, but he remained sitting in the same old dejected attitude, with
a wrinkle in his round forehead and an appearance of impersonal shame and
sorrow; his voice was colourless and sad.
“What I want to
know,” cried Kalon, with an oath, “is when the police are coming for this
bloody and wicked sister. She's killed her flesh and blood; she's robbed me of
half a million that was just as sacredly mine as—”
“Come, come,
prophet,” interrupted Flambeau, with a kind of sneer; “remember that all this
world is a cloudland.”
The hierophant of
the sun-god made an effort to climb back on his pedestal. “It is not the mere
money,” he cried, “though that would equip the cause throughout the world. It
is also my beloved one's wishes. To Pauline all this was holy. In Pauline's
eyes—”
Father Brown
suddenly sprang erect, so that his chair fell over flat behind him. He was
deathly pale, yet he seemed fired with a hope; his eyes shone.
“That's it!” he
cried in a clear voice. “That's the way to begin. In Pauline's eyes—”
The tall prophet
retreated before the tiny priest in an almost mad disorder. “What do you mean?
How dare you?” he cried repeatedly.
“In Pauline's
eyes,” repeated the priest, his own shining more and more. “Go on—in God's
name, go on. The foulest crime the fiends ever prompted feels lighter after
confession; and I implore you to confess. Go on, go on—in Pauline's eyes—”
“Let me go, you
devil!” thundered Kalon, struggling like a giant in bonds. “Who are you, you
cursed spy, to weave your spiders' webs round me, and peep and peer? Let me
go.”
“Shall I stop
him?” asked Flambeau, bounding towards the exit, for Kalon had already thrown
the door wide open.
“No; let him
pass,” said Father Brown, with a strange deep sigh that seemed to come from the
depths of the universe. “Let Cain pass by, for he belongs to God.”
There was a
long-drawn silence in the room when he had left it, which was to Flambeau's
fierce wits one long agony of interrogation. Miss Joan Stacey very coolly
tidied up the papers on her desk.
“Father,” said
Flambeau at last, “it is my duty, not my curiosity only— it is my duty to find
out, if I can, who committed the crime.”
“Which crime?”
asked Father Brown.
“The one we are
dealing with, of course,” replied his impatient friend.
“We are dealing
with two crimes,” said Brown, “crimes of very different weight—and by very
different criminals.”
Miss Joan Stacey,
having collected and put away her papers, proceeded to lock up her drawer.
Father Brown went on, noticing her as little as she noticed him.
“The two crimes,”
he observed, “were committed against the same weakness of the same person, in a
struggle for her money. The author of the larger crime found himself thwarted
by the smaller crime; the author of the smaller crime got the money.”
“Oh, don't go on
like a lecturer,” groaned Flambeau; “put it in a few words.”
“I can put it in
one word,” answered his friend.
Miss Joan Stacey
skewered her business-like black hat on to her head with a business-like black
frown before a little mirror, and, as the conversation proceeded, took her
handbag and umbrella in an unhurried style, and left the room.
“The truth is one
word, and a short one,” said Father Brown. “Pauline Stacey was blind.”
“Blind!” repeated
Flambeau, and rose slowly to his whole huge stature.
“She was subject
to it by blood,” Brown proceeded. “Her sister would have started eyeglasses if
Pauline would have let her; but it was her special philosophy or fad that one
must not encourage such diseases by yielding to them. She would not admit the
cloud; or she tried to dispel it by will. So her eyes got worse and worse with
straining; but the worst strain was to come. It came with this precious
prophet, or whatever he calls himself, who taught her to stare at the hot sun
with the naked eye. It was called accepting Apollo. Oh, if these new pagans
would only be old pagans, they would be a little wiser! The old pagans knew
that mere naked Nature-worship must have a cruel side. They knew that the eye
of Apollo can blast and blind.”
There was a
pause, and the priest went on in a gentle and even broken voice. “Whether or no
that devil deliberately made her blind, there is no doubt that he deliberately
killed her through her blindness. The very simplicity of the crime is
sickening. You know he and she went up and down in those lifts without official
help; you know also how smoothly and silently the lifts slide. Kalon brought
the lift to the girl's landing, and saw her, through the open door, writing in
her slow, sightless way the will she had promised him. He called out to her
cheerily that he had the lift ready for her, and she was to come out when she
was ready. Then he pressed a button and shot soundlessly up to his own floor,
walked through his own office, out on to his own balcony, and was safely
praying before the crowded street when the poor girl, having finished her work,
ran gaily out to where lover and lift were to receive her, and stepped—”
“Don't!” cried
Flambeau.
“He ought to have
got half a million by pressing that button,” continued the little father, in
the colourless voice in which he talked of such horrors. “But that went smash.
It went smash because there happened to be another person who also wanted the
money, and who also knew the secret about poor Pauline's sight. There was one
thing about that will that I think nobody noticed: although it was unfinished
and without signature, the other Miss Stacey and some servant of hers had
already signed it as witnesses. Joan had signed first, saying Pauline could
finish it later, with a typical feminine contempt for legal forms. Therefore,
Joan wanted her sister to sign the will without real witnesses. Why? I thought
of the blindness, and felt sure she had wanted Pauline to sign in solitude
because she had wanted her not to sign at all.
“People like the
Staceys always use fountain pens; but this was specially natural to Pauline. By
habit and her strong will and memory she could still write almost as well as if
she saw; but she could not tell when her pen needed dipping. Therefore, her
fountain pens were carefully filled by her sister—all except this fountain pen.
This was carefully not filled by her sister; the remains of the ink held out
for a few lines and then failed altogether. And the prophet lost five hundred
thousand pounds and committed one of the most brutal and brilliant murders in
human history for nothing.”
Flambeau went to
the open door and heard the official police ascending the stairs. He turned and
said: “You must have followed everything devilish close to have traced the
crime to Kalon in ten minutes.”
Father Brown gave
a sort of start.
“Oh! to him,” he
said. “No; I had to follow rather close to find out about Miss Joan and the
fountain pen. But I knew Kalon was the criminal before I came into the front
door.”
“You must be
joking!” cried Flambeau.
“I'm quite
serious,” answered the priest. “I tell you I knew he had done it, even before I
knew what he had done.”
“But why?”
“These pagan
stoics,” said Brown reflectively, “always fail by their strength. There came a
crash and a scream down the street, and the priest of Apollo did not start or look
round. I did not know what it was. But I knew that he was expecting it.”
The Sign of the
Broken Sword
The thousand arms
of the forest were grey, and its million fingers silver. In a sky of dark
green-blue-like slate the stars were bleak and brilliant like splintered ice.
All that thickly wooded and sparsely tenanted countryside was stiff with a
bitter and brittle frost. The black hollows between the trunks of the trees
looked like bottomless, black caverns of that Scandinavian hell, a hell of
incalculable cold. Even the square stone tower of the church looked northern to
the point of heathenry, as if it were some barbaric tower among the sea rocks
of Iceland. It was a queer night for anyone to explore a churchyard. But, on
the other hand, perhaps it was worth exploring.
It rose abruptly
out of the ashen wastes of forest in a sort of hump or shoulder of green turf
that looked grey in the starlight. Most of the graves were on a slant, and the
path leading up to the church was as steep as a staircase. On the top of the
hill, in the one flat and prominent place, was the monument for which the place
was famous. It contrasted strangely with the featureless graves all round, for
it was the work of one of the greatest sculptors of modern Europe; and yet his
fame was at once forgotten in the fame of the man whose image he had made. It
showed, by touches of the small silver pencil of starlight, the massive metal
figure of a soldier recumbent, the strong hands sealed in an everlasting
worship, the great head pillowed upon a gun. The venerable face was bearded, or
rather whiskered, in the old, heavy Colonel Newcome fashion. The uniform,
though suggested with the few strokes of simplicity, was that of modern war. By
his right side lay a sword, of which the tip was broken off; on the left side
lay a Bible. On glowing summer afternoons wagonettes came full of Americans and
cultured suburbans to see the sepulchre; but even then they felt the vast
forest land with its one dumpy dome of churchyard and church as a place oddly
dumb and neglected. In this freezing darkness of mid-winter one would think he
might be left alone with the stars. Nevertheless, in the stillness of those
stiff woods a wooden gate creaked, and two dim figures dressed in black climbed
up the little path to the tomb.
So faint was that
frigid starlight that nothing could have been traced about them except that
while they both wore black, one man was enormously big, and the other (perhaps
by contrast) almost startlingly small. They went up to the great graven tomb of
the historic warrior, and stood for a few minutes staring at it. There was no
human, perhaps no living, thing for a wide circle; and a morbid fancy might
well have wondered if they were human themselves. In any case, the beginning of
their conversation might have seemed strange. After the first silence the small
man said to the other:
“Where does a
wise man hide a pebble?”
And the tall man
answered in a low voice: “On the beach.”
The small man
nodded, and after a short silence said: “Where does a wise man hide a leaf?”
And the other
answered: “In the forest.”
There was another
stillness, and then the tall man resumed: “Do you mean that when a wise man has
to hide a real diamond he has been known to hide it among sham ones?”
“No, no,” said
the little man with a laugh, “we will let bygones be bygones.”
He stamped his
cold feet for a second or two, and then said: “I'm not thinking of that at all,
but of something else; something rather peculiar. Just strike a match, will
you?”
The big man
fumbled in his pocket, and soon a scratch and a flare painted gold the whole
flat side of the monument. On it was cut in black letters the well-known words
which so many Americans had reverently read: “Sacred to the Memory of General
Sir Arthur St. Clare, Hero and Martyr, who Always Vanquished his Enemies and
Always Spared Them, and Was Treacherously Slain by Them At Last. May God in
Whom he Trusted both Reward and Revenge him.”
The match burnt
the big man's fingers, blackened, and dropped. He was about to strike another,
but his small companion stopped him. “That's all right, Flambeau, old man; I
saw what I wanted. Or, rather, I didn't see what I didn't want. And now we must
walk a mile and a half along the road to the next inn, and I will try to tell
you all about it. For Heaven knows a man should have a fire and ale when he
dares tell such a story.”
They descended
the precipitous path, they relatched the rusty gate, and set off at a stamping,
ringing walk down the frozen forest road. They had gone a full quarter of a mile
before the smaller man spoke again. He said: “Yes; the wise man hides a pebble
on the beach. But what does he do if there is no beach? Do you know anything of
that great St. Clare trouble?”
“I know nothing
about English generals, Father Brown,” answered the large man, laughing,
“though a little about English policemen. I only know that you have dragged me
a precious long dance to all the shrines of this fellow, whoever he is. One
would think he got buried in six different places. I've seen a memorial to
General St. Clare in Westminster Abbey. I've seen a ramping equestrian statue
of General St. Clare on the Embankment. I've seen a medallion of St. Clare in
the street he was born in, and another in the street he lived in; and now you
drag me after dark to his coffin in the village churchyard. I am beginning to
be a bit tired of his magnificent personality, especially as I don't in the
least know who he was. What are you hunting for in all these crypts and
effigies?”
“I am only
looking for one word,” said Father Brown. “A word that isn't there.”
“Well,” asked
Flambeau; “are you going to tell me anything about it?”
“I must divide it
into two parts,” remarked the priest. “First there is what everybody knows; and
then there is what I know. Now, what everybody knows is short and plain enough.
It is also entirely wrong.”
“Right you are,”
said the big man called Flambeau cheerfully. “Let's begin at the wrong end.
Let's begin with what everybody knows, which isn't true.”
“If not wholly
untrue, it is at least very inadequate,” continued Brown; “for in point of
fact, all that the public knows amounts precisely to this: The public knows
that Arthur St. Clare was a great and successful English general. It knows that
after splendid yet careful campaigns both in India and Africa he was in command
against Brazil when the great Brazilian patriot Olivier issued his ultimatum.
It knows that on that occasion St. Clare with a very small force attacked
Olivier with a very large one, and was captured after heroic resistance. And it
knows that after his capture, and to the abhorrence of the civilised world, St.
Clare was hanged on the nearest tree. He was found swinging there after the
Brazilians had retired, with his broken sword hung round his neck.”
“And that popular
story is untrue?” suggested Flambeau.
“No,” said his
friend quietly, “that story is quite true, so far as it goes.”
“Well, I think it
goes far enough!” said Flambeau; “but if the popular story is true, what is the
mystery?”
They had passed
many hundreds of grey and ghostly trees before the little priest answered. Then
he bit his finger reflectively and said: “Why, the mystery is a mystery of
psychology. Or, rather, it is a mystery of two psychologies. In that Brazilian
business two of the most famous men of modern history acted flat against their
characters. Mind you, Olivier and St. Clare were both heroes—the old thing, and
no mistake; it was like the fight between Hector and Achilles. Now, what would
you say to an affair in which Achilles was timid and Hector was treacherous?”
“Go on,” said the
large man impatiently as the other bit his finger again.
“Sir Arthur St.
Clare was a soldier of the old religious type— the type that saved us during
the Mutiny,” continued Brown. “He was always more for duty than for dash; and
with all his personal courage was decidedly a prudent commander, particularly
indignant at any needless waste of soldiers. Yet in this last battle he
attempted something that a baby could see was absurd. One need not be a
strategist to see it was as wild as wind; just as one need not be a strategist
to keep out of the way of a motor-bus. Well, that is the first mystery; what
had become of the English general's head? The second riddle is, what had become
of the Brazilian general's heart? President Olivier might be called a visionary
or a nuisance; but even his enemies admitted that he was magnanimous to the
point of knight errantry. Almost every other prisoner he had ever captured had
been set free or even loaded with benefits. Men who had really wronged him came
away touched by his simplicity and sweetness. Why the deuce should he
diabolically revenge himself only once in his life; and that for the one
particular blow that could not have hurt him? Well, there you have it. One of
the wisest men in the world acted like an idiot for no reason. One of the best
men in the world acted like a fiend for no reason. That's the long and the
short of it; and I leave it to you, my boy.”
“No, you don't,”
said the other with a snort. “I leave it to you; and you jolly well tell me all
about it.”
“Well,” resumed
Father Brown, “it's not fair to say that the public impression is just what
I've said, without adding that two things have happened since. I can't say they
threw a new light; for nobody can make sense of them. But they threw a new kind
of darkness; they threw the darkness in new directions. The first was this. The
family physician of the St. Clares quarrelled with that family, and began
publishing a violent series of articles, in which he said that the late general
was a religious maniac; but as far as the tale went, this seemed to mean little
more than a religious man. Anyhow, the story fizzled out. Everyone knew, of
course, that St. Clare had some of the eccentricities of puritan piety. The
second incident was much more arresting. In the luckless and unsupported
regiment which made that rash attempt at the Black River there was a certain
Captain Keith, who was at that time engaged to St. Clare's daughter, and who
afterwards married her. He was one of those who were captured by Olivier, and,
like all the rest except the general, appears to have been bounteously treated
and promptly set free. Some twenty years afterwards this man, then
Lieutenant-Colonel Keith, published a sort of autobiography called “A British
Officer in Burmah and Brazil. ' In the place where the reader looks eagerly for
some account of the mystery of St. Clare's disaster may be found the following
words: “Everywhere else in this book I have narrated things exactly as they
occurred, holding as I do the old-fashioned opinion that the glory of England
is old enough to take care of itself. The exception I shall make is in this
matter of the defeat by the Black River; and my reasons, though private, are
honourable and compelling. I will, however, add this in justice to the memories
of two distinguished men. General St. Clare has been accused of incapacity on
this occasion; I can at least testify that this action, properly understood,
was one of the most brilliant and sagacious of his life. President Olivier by
similar report is charged with savage injustice. I think it due to the honour
of an enemy to say that he acted on this occasion with even more than his
characteristic good feeling. To put the matter popularly, I can assure my
countrymen that St. Clare was by no means such a fool nor Olivier such a brute
as he looked. This is all I have to say; nor shall any earthly consideration
induce me to add a word to it. '”
A large frozen
moon like a lustrous snowball began to show through the tangle of twigs in
front of them, and by its light the narrator had been able to refresh his
memory of Captain Keith's text from a scrap of printed paper. As he folded it
up and put it back in his pocket Flambeau threw up his hand with a French
gesture.
“Wait a bit, wait
a bit,” he cried excitedly. “I believe I can guess it at the first go.”
He strode on,
breathing hard, his black head and bull neck forward, like a man winning a
walking race. The little priest, amused and interested, had some trouble in
trotting beside him. Just before them the trees fell back a little to left and
right, and the road swept downwards across a clear, moonlit valley, till it
dived again like a rabbit into the wall of another wood. The entrance to the
farther forest looked small and round, like the black hole of a remote railway
tunnel. But it was within some hundred yards, and gaped like a cavern before
Flambeau spoke again.
“I've got it,” he
cried at last, slapping his thigh with his great hand. “Four minutes' thinking,
and I can tell your whole story myself.”
“All right,”
assented his friend. “You tell it.”
Flambeau lifted
his head, but lowered his voice. “General Sir Arthur St. Clare,” he said, “came
of a family in which madness was hereditary; and his whole aim was to keep this
from his daughter, and even, if possible, from his future son-in-law. Rightly
or wrongly, he thought the final collapse was close, and resolved on suicide.
Yet ordinary suicide would blazon the very idea he dreaded. As the campaign approached
the clouds came thicker on his brain; and at last in a mad moment he sacrificed
his public duty to his private. He rushed rashly into battle, hoping to fall by
the first shot. When he found that he had only attained capture and discredit,
the sealed bomb in his brain burst, and he broke his own sword and hanged
himself.”
He stared firmly
at the grey facade of forest in front of him, with the one black gap in it,
like the mouth of the grave, into which their path plunged. Perhaps something
menacing in the road thus suddenly swallowed reinforced his vivid vision of the
tragedy, for he shuddered.
“A horrid story,”
he said.
“A horrid story,”
repeated the priest with bent head. “But not the real story.”
Then he threw
back his head with a sort of despair and cried: “Oh, I wish it had been.”
The tall Flambeau
faced round and stared at him.
“Yours is a clean
story,” cried Father Brown, deeply moved. “A sweet, pure, honest story, as open
and white as that moon. Madness and despair are innocent enough. There are
worse things, Flambeau.”
Flambeau looked
up wildly at the moon thus invoked; and from where he stood one black
tree-bough curved across it exactly like a devil's horn.
“Father—father,”
cried Flambeau with the French gesture and stepping yet more rapidly forward,
“do you mean it was worse than that?”
“Worse than
that,” said Paul like a grave echo. And they plunged into the black cloister of
the woodland, which ran by them in a dim tapestry of trunks, like one of the
dark corridors in a dream.
They were soon in
the most secret entrails of the wood, and felt close about them foliage that
they could not see, when the priest said again:
“Where does a
wise man hide a leaf? In the forest. But what does he do if there is no
forest?”
“Well, well,”
cried Flambeau irritably, “what does he do?”
“He grows a
forest to hide it in,” said the priest in an obscure voice. “A fearful sin.”
“Look here,”
cried his friend impatiently, for the dark wood and the dark saying got a
little on his nerves; will you tell me this story or not? What other evidence
is there to go on?”
“There are three
more bits of evidence,” said the other, “that I have dug up in holes and
corners; and I will give them in logical rather than chronological order. First
of all, of course, our authority for the issue and event of the battle is in
Olivier's own dispatches, which are lucid enough. He was entrenched with two or
three regiments on the heights that swept down to the Black River, on the other
side of which was lower and more marshy ground. Beyond this again was gently
rising country, on which was the first English outpost, supported by others
which lay, however, considerably in its rear. The British forces as a whole
were greatly superior in numbers; but this particular regiment was just far
enough from its base to make Olivier consider the project of crossing the river
to cut it off. By sunset, however, he had decided to retain his own position,
which was a specially strong one. At daybreak next morning he was thunderstruck
to see that this stray handful of English, entirely unsupported from their
rear, had flung themselves across the river, half by a bridge to the right, and
the other half by a ford higher up, and were massed upon the marshy bank below
him.
“That they should
attempt an attack with such numbers against such a position was incredible
enough; but Olivier noticed something yet more extraordinary. For instead of
attempting to seize more solid ground, this mad regiment, having put the river
in its rear by one wild charge, did nothing more, but stuck there in the mire
like flies in treacle. Needless to say, the Brazilians blew great gaps in them
with artillery, which they could only return with spirited but lessening rifle
fire. Yet they never broke; and Olivier's curt account ends with a strong
tribute of admiration for the mystic valour of these imbeciles. “Our line then
advanced finally,' writes Olivier, “and drove them into the river; we captured
General St. Clare himself and several other officers. The colonel and the major
had both fallen in the battle. I cannot resist saying that few finer sights can
have been seen in history than the last stand of this extraordinary regiment;
wounded officers picking up the rifles of dead soldiers, and the general
himself facing us on horseback bareheaded and with a broken sword. ' On what
happened to the general afterwards Olivier is as silent as Captain Keith.”
“Well,” grunted
Flambeau, “get on to the next bit of evidence.”
“The next
evidence,” said Father Brown, “took some time to find, but it will not take
long to tell. I found at last in an almshouse down in the Lincolnshire Fens an
old soldier who not only was wounded at the Black River, but had actually knelt
beside the colonel of the regiment when he died. This latter was a certain
Colonel Clancy, a big bull of an Irishman; and it would seem that he died
almost as much of rage as of bullets. He, at any rate, was not responsible for
that ridiculous raid; it must have been imposed on him by the general. His last
edifying words, according to my informant, were these: “And there goes the
damned old donkey with the end of his sword knocked off. I wish it was his
head. ' You will remark that everyone seems to have noticed this detail about
the broken sword blade, though most people regard it somewhat more reverently
than did the late Colonel Clancy. And now for the third fragment.”
Their path
through the woodland began to go upward, and the speaker paused a little for
breath before he went on. Then he continued in the same business-like tone:
“Only a month or
two ago a certain Brazilian official died in England, having quarrelled with
Olivier and left his country. He was a well-known figure both here and on the
Continent, a Spaniard named Espado; I knew him myself, a yellow-faced old
dandy, with a hooked nose. For various private reasons I had permission to see
the documents he had left; he was a Catholic, of course, and I had been with
him towards the end. There was nothing of his that lit up any corner of the
black St. Clare business, except five or six common exercise books filled with
the diary of some English soldier. I can only suppose that it was found by the
Brazilians on one of those that fell. Anyhow, it stopped abruptly the night
before the battle.
“But the account
of that last day in the poor fellow's life was certainly worth reading. I have
it on me; but it's too dark to read it here, and I will give you a resume. The
first part of that entry is full of jokes, evidently flung about among the men,
about somebody called the Vulture. It does not seem as if this person, whoever
he was, was one of themselves, nor even an Englishman; neither is he exactly
spoken of as one of the enemy. It sounds rather as if he were some local
go-between and non-combatant; perhaps a guide or a journalist. He has been
closeted with old Colonel Clancy; but is more often seen talking to the major.
Indeed, the major is somewhat prominent in this soldier's narrative; a lean,
dark-haired man, apparently, of the name of Murray— a north of Ireland man and
a Puritan. There are continual jests about the contrast between this Ulsterman's
austerity and the conviviality of Colonel Clancy. There is also some joke about
the Vulture wearing bright-coloured clothes.
“But all these
levities are scattered by what may well be called the note of a bugle. Behind
the English camp and almost parallel to the river ran one of the few great
roads of that district. Westward the road curved round towards the river, which
it crossed by the bridge before mentioned. To the east the road swept backwards
into the wilds, and some two miles along it was the next English outpost. From
this direction there came along the road that evening a glitter and clatter of
light cavalry, in which even the simple diarist could recognise with
astonishment the general with his staff. He rode the great white horse which you
have seen so often in illustrated papers and Academy pictures; and you may be
sure that the salute they gave him was not merely ceremonial. He, at least,
wasted no time on ceremony, but, springing from the saddle immediately, mixed
with the group of officers, and fell into emphatic though confidential speech.
What struck our friend the diarist most was his special disposition to discuss
matters with Major Murray; but, indeed, such a selection, so long as it was not
marked, was in no way unnatural. The two men were made for sympathy; they were
men who “read their Bibles'; they were both the old Evangelical type of
officer. However this may be, it is certain that when the general mounted again
he was still talking earnestly to Murray; and that as he walked his horse
slowly down the road towards the river, the tall Ulsterman still walked by his
bridle rein in earnest debate. The soldiers watched the two until they vanished
behind a clump of trees where the road turned towards the river. The colonel
had gone back to his tent, and the men to their pickets; the man with the diary
lingered for another four minutes, and saw a marvellous sight.
“The great white
horse which had marched slowly down the road, as it had marched in so many
processions, flew back, galloping up the road towards them as if it were mad to
win a race. At first they thought it had run away with the man on its back; but
they soon saw that the general, a fine rider, was himself urging it to full
speed. Horse and man swept up to them like a whirlwind; and then, reining up
the reeling charger, the general turned on them a face like flame, and called
for the colonel like the trumpet that wakes the dead.
“I conceive that
all the earthquake events of that catastrophe tumbled on top of each other
rather like lumber in the minds of men such as our friend with the diary. With
the dazed excitement of a dream, they found themselves falling—literally
falling—into their ranks, and learned that an attack was to be led at once
across the river. The general and the major, it was said, had found out
something at the bridge, and there was only just time to strike for life. The
major had gone back at once to call up the reserve along the road behind; it
was doubtful if even with that prompt appeal help could reach them in time. But
they must pass the stream that night, and seize the heights by morning. It is
with the very stir and throb of that romantic nocturnal march that the diary
suddenly ends.”
Father Brown had
mounted ahead; for the woodland path grew smaller, steeper, and more twisted,
till they felt as if they were ascending a winding staircase. The priest's
voice came from above out of the darkness.
“There was one
other little and enormous thing. When the general urged them to their chivalric
charge he half drew his sword from the scabbard; and then, as if ashamed of
such melodrama, thrust it back again. The sword again, you see.”
A half-light
broke through the network of boughs above them, flinging the ghost of a net
about their feet; for they were mounting again to the faint luminosity of the
naked night. Flambeau felt truth all round him as an atmosphere, but not as an
idea. He answered with bewildered brain: “Well, what's the matter with the
sword? Officers generally have swords, don't they?”
“They are not often
mentioned in modern war,” said the other dispassionately; “but in this affair
one falls over the blessed sword everywhere.”
“Well, what is
there in that?” growled Flambeau; “it was a twopence coloured sort of incident;
the old man's blade breaking in his last battle. Anyone might bet the papers
would get hold of it, as they have. On all these tombs and things it's shown
broken at the point. I hope you haven't dragged me through this Polar
expedition merely because two men with an eye for a picture saw St. Clare's
broken sword.”
“No,” cried
Father Brown, with a sharp voice like a pistol shot; “but who saw his unbroken
sword?”
“What do you
mean?” cried the other, and stood still under the stars. They had come abruptly
out of the grey gates of the wood.
“I say, who saw
his unbroken sword?” repeated Father Brown obstinately. “Not the writer of the
diary, anyhow; the general sheathed it in time.”
Flambeau looked
about him in the moonlight, as a man struck blind might look in the sun; and
his friend went on, for the first time with eagerness:
“Flambeau,” he
cried, “I cannot prove it, even after hunting through the tombs. But I am sure
of it. Let me add just one more tiny fact that tips the whole thing over. The
colonel, by a strange chance, was one of the first struck by a bullet. He was
struck long before the troops came to close quarters. But he saw St. Clare's
sword broken. Why was it broken? How was it broken? My friend, it was broken
before the battle.”
“Oh!” said his
friend, with a sort of forlorn jocularity; “and pray where is the other piece?”
“I can tell you,”
said the priest promptly. “In the northeast corner of the cemetery of the
Protestant Cathedral at Belfast.”
“Indeed?”
inquired the other. “Have you looked for it?”
“I couldn't,”
replied Brown, with frank regret. “There's a great marble monument on top of
it; a monument to the heroic Major Murray, who fell fighting gloriously at the
famous Battle of the Black River.”
Flambeau seemed
suddenly galvanised into existence. “You mean,” he cried hoarsely, “that
General St. Clare hated Murray, and murdered him on the field of battle
because—”
“You are still
full of good and pure thoughts,” said the other. “It was worse than that.”
“Well,” said the
large man, “my stock of evil imagination is used up.”
The priest seemed
really doubtful where to begin, and at last he said again:
“Where would a
wise man hide a leaf? In the forest.”
The other did not
answer.
“If there were no
forest, he would make a forest. And if he wished to hide a dead leaf, he would
make a dead forest.”
There was still
no reply, and the priest added still more mildly and quietly:
“And if a man had
to hide a dead body, he would make a field of dead bodies to hide it in.”
Flambeau began to
stamp forward with an intolerance of delay in time or space; but Father Brown
went on as if he were continuing the last sentence:
“Sir Arthur St.
Clare, as I have already said, was a man who read his Bible. That was what was
the matter with him. When will people understand that it is useless for a man
to read his Bible unless he also reads everybody else's Bible? A printer reads
a Bible for misprints. A Mormon reads his Bible, and finds polygamy; a Christian
Scientist reads his, and finds we have no arms and legs. St. Clare was an old
Anglo-Indian Protestant soldier. Now, just think what that might mean; and, for
Heaven's sake, don't cant about it. It might mean a man physically formidable
living under a tropic sun in an Oriental society, and soaking himself without
sense or guidance in an Oriental Book. Of course, he read the Old Testament
rather than the New. Of course, he found in the Old Testament anything that he
wanted—lust, tyranny, treason. Oh, I dare say he was honest, as you call it.
But what is the good of a man being honest in his worship of dishonesty?
“In each of the
hot and secret countries to which the man went he kept a harem, he tortured
witnesses, he amassed shameful gold; but certainly he would have said with
steady eyes that he did it to the glory of the Lord. My own theology is
sufficiently expressed by asking which Lord? Anyhow, there is this about such
evil, that it opens door after door in hell, and always into smaller and
smaller chambers. This is the real case against crime, that a man does not
become wilder and wilder, but only meaner and meaner. St. Clare was soon
suffocated by difficulties of bribery and blackmail; and needed more and more
cash. And by the time of the Battle of the Black River he had fallen from world
to world to that place which Dante makes the lowest floor of the universe.”
“What do you
mean?” asked his friend again.
“I mean that,”
retorted the cleric, and suddenly pointed at a puddle sealed with ice that
shone in the moon. “Do you remember whom Dante put in the last circle of ice?”
“The traitors,”
said Flambeau, and shuddered. As he looked around at the inhuman landscape of
trees, with taunting and almost obscene outlines, he could almost fancy he was
Dante, and the priest with the rivulet of a voice was, indeed, a Virgil leading
him through a land of eternal sins.
The voice went
on: “Olivier, as you know, was quixotic, and would not permit a secret service
and spies. The thing, however, was done, like many other things, behind his
back. It was managed by my old friend Espado; he was the bright-clad fop, whose
hook nose got him called the Vulture. Posing as a sort of philanthropist at the
front, he felt his way through the English Army, and at last got his fingers on
its one corrupt man—please God!—and that man at the top. St. Clare was in foul
need of money, and mountains of it. The discredited family doctor was
threatening those extraordinary exposures that afterwards began and were broken
off; tales of monstrous and prehistoric things in Park Lane; things done by an
English Evangelist that smelt like human sacrifice and hordes of slaves. Money
was wanted, too, for his daughter's dowry; for to him the fame of wealth was as
sweet as wealth itself. He snapped the last thread, whispered the word to
Brazil, and wealth poured in from the enemies of England. But another man had
talked to Espado the Vulture as well as he. Somehow the dark, grim young major
from Ulster had guessed the hideous truth; and when they walked slowly together
down that road towards the bridge Murray was telling the general that he must
resign instantly, or be court-martialled and shot. The general temporised with
him till they came to the fringe of tropic trees by the bridge; and there by
the singing river and the sunlit palms (for I can see the picture) the general
drew his sabre and plunged it through the body of the major.”
The wintry road
curved over a ridge in cutting frost, with cruel black shapes of bush and
thicket; but Flambeau fancied that he saw beyond it faintly the edge of an
aureole that was not starlight and moonlight, but some fire such as is made by
men. He watched it as the tale drew to its close.
“St. Clare was a
hell-hound, but he was a hound of breed. Never, I'll swear, was he so lucid and
so strong as when poor Murray lay a cold lump at his feet. Never in all his
triumphs, as Captain Keith said truly, was the great man so great as he was in
this last world-despised defeat. He looked coolly at his weapon to wipe off the
blood; he saw the point he had planted between his victim's shoulders had
broken off in the body. He saw quite calmly, as through a club windowpane, all
that must follow. He saw that men must find the unaccountable corpse; must
extract the unaccountable sword-point; must notice the unaccountable broken
sword—or absence of sword. He had killed, but not silenced. But his imperious
intellect rose against the facer; there was one way yet. He could make the
corpse less unaccountable. He could create a hill of corpses to cover this one.
In twenty minutes eight hundred English soldiers were marching down to their
death.”
The warmer glow
behind the black winter wood grew richer and brighter, and Flambeau strode on
to reach it. Father Brown also quickened his stride; but he seemed merely
absorbed in his tale.
“Such was the
valour of that English thousand, and such the genius of their commander, that
if they had at once attacked the hill, even their mad march might have met some
luck. But the evil mind that played with them like pawns had other aims and
reasons. They must remain in the marshes by the bridge at least till British
corpses should be a common sight there. Then for the last grand scene; the
silver-haired soldier-saint would give up his shattered sword to save further slaughter.
Oh, it was well organised for an impromptu. But I think (I cannot prove), I
think that it was while they stuck there in the bloody mire that someone
doubted—and someone guessed.”
He was mute a
moment, and then said: “There is a voice from nowhere that tells me the man who
guessed was the lover ...the man to wed the old man's child.”
“But what about
Olivier and the hanging?” asked Flambeau.
“Olivier, partly
from chivalry, partly from policy, seldom encumbered his march with captives,”
explained the narrator. “He released everybody in most cases. He released
everybody in this case.
“Everybody but
the general,” said the tall man.
“Everybody,” said
the priest.
Flambeau knit his
black brows. “I don't grasp it all yet,” he said.
“There is another
picture, Flambeau,” said Brown in his more mystical undertone. “I can't prove
it; but I can do more—I can see it. There is a camp breaking up on the bare,
torrid hills at morning, and Brazilian uniforms massed in blocks and columns to
march. There is the red shirt and long black beard of Olivier, which blows as
he stands, his broad-brimmed hat in his hand. He is saying farewell to the
great enemy he is setting free— the simple, snow-headed English veteran, who
thanks him in the name of his men. The English remnant stand behind at
attention; beside them are stores and vehicles for the retreat. The drums roll;
the Brazilians are moving; the English are still like statues. So they abide
till the last hum and flash of the enemy have faded from the tropic horizon.
Then they alter their postures all at once, like dead men coming to life; they
turn their fifty faces upon the general—faces not to be forgotten.”
Flambeau gave a
great jump. “Ah,” he cried, “you don't mean—”
“Yes,” said
Father Brown in a deep, moving voice. “It was an English hand that put the rope
round St. Clare's neck; I believe the hand that put the ring on his daughter's
finger. They were English hands that dragged him up to the tree of shame; the
hands of men that had adored him and followed him to victory. And they were
English souls (God pardon and endure us all!) who stared at him swinging in
that foreign sun on the green gallows of palm, and prayed in their hatred that
he might drop off it into hell.”
As the two topped
the ridge there burst on them the strong scarlet light of a red-curtained
English inn. It stood sideways in the road, as if standing aside in the
amplitude of hospitality. Its three doors stood open with invitation; and even
where they stood they could hear the hum and laughter of humanity happy for a
night.
“I need not tell
you more,” said Father Brown. “They tried him in the wilderness and destroyed
him; and then, for the honour of England and of his daughter, they took an oath
to seal up for ever the story of the traitor's purse and the assassin's sword
blade. Perhaps—Heaven help them—they tried to forget it. Let us try to forget
it, anyhow; here is our inn.”
“With all my
heart,” said Flambeau, and was just striding into the bright, noisy bar when he
stepped back and almost fell on the road.
“Look there, in
the devil's name!” he cried, and pointed rigidly at the square wooden sign that
overhung the road. It showed dimly the crude shape of a sabre hilt and a
shortened blade; and was inscribed in false archaic lettering, “The Sign of the
Broken Sword.”
“Were you not
prepared?” asked Father Brown gently. “He is the god of this country; half the
inns and parks and streets are named after him and his story.”
“I thought we had
done with the leper,” cried Flambeau, and spat on the road.
“You will never
have done with him in England,” said the priest, looking down, “while brass is
strong and stone abides. His marble statues will erect the souls of proud,
innocent boys for centuries, his village tomb will smell of loyalty as of
lilies. Millions who never knew him shall love him like a father— this man whom
the last few that knew him dealt with like dung. He shall be a saint; and the
truth shall never be told of him, because I have made up my mind at last. There
is so much good and evil in breaking secrets, that I put my conduct to a test.
All these newspapers will perish; the anti-Brazil boom is already over; Olivier
is already honoured everywhere. But I told myself that if anywhere, by name, in
metal or marble that will endure like the pyramids, Colonel Clancy, or Captain
Keith, or President Olivier, or any innocent man was wrongly blamed, then I
would speak. If it were only that St. Clare was wrongly praised, I would be
silent. And I will.”
They plunged into
the red-curtained tavern, which was not only cosy, but even luxurious inside.
On a table stood a silver model of the tomb of St. Clare, the silver head
bowed, the silver sword broken. On the walls were coloured photographs of the
same scene, and of the system of wagonettes that took tourists to see it. They
sat down on the comfortable padded benches.
“Come, it's
cold,” cried Father Brown; “let's have some wine or beer.”
“Or brandy,” said
Flambeau.
The Three Tools
of Death
Both by calling
and conviction Father Brown knew better than most of us, that every man is
dignified when he is dead. But even he felt a pang of incongruity when he was
knocked up at daybreak and told that Sir Aaron Armstrong had been murdered.
There was something absurd and unseemly about secret violence in connection with
so entirely entertaining and popular a figure. For Sir Aaron Armstrong was
entertaining to the point of being comic; and popular in such a manner as to be
almost legendary. It was like hearing that Sunny Jim had hanged himself; or
that Mr. Pickwick had died in Hanwell. For though Sir Aaron was a
philanthropist, and thus dealt with the darker side of our society, he prided
himself on dealing with it in the brightest possible style. His political and
social speeches were cataracts of anecdotes and “loud laughter”; his bodily
health was of a bursting sort; his ethics were all optimism; and he dealt with
the Drink problem (his favourite topic) with that immortal or even monotonous
gaiety which is so often a mark of the prosperous total abstainer.
The established
story of his conversion was familiar on the more puritanic platforms and
pulpits, how he had been, when only a boy, drawn away from Scotch theology to
Scotch whisky, and how he had risen out of both and become (as he modestly put
it) what he was. Yet his wide white beard, cherubic face, and sparkling
spectacles, at the numberless dinners and congresses where they appeared, made
it hard to believe, somehow, that he had ever been anything so morbid as either
a dram-drinker or a Calvinist. He was, one felt, the most seriously merry of
all the sons of men.
He had lived on
the rural skirt of Hampstead in a handsome house, high but not broad, a modern
and prosaic tower. The narrowest of its narrow sides overhung the steep green
bank of a railway, and was shaken by passing trains. Sir Aaron Armstrong, as he
boisterously explained, had no nerves. But if the train had often given a shock
to the house, that morning the tables were turned, and it was the house that
gave a shock to the train.
The engine slowed
down and stopped just beyond that point where an angle of the house impinged
upon the sharp slope of turf. The arrest of most mechanical things must be
slow; but the living cause of this had been very rapid. A man clad completely
in black, even (it was remembered) to the dreadful detail of black gloves,
appeared on the ridge above the engine, and waved his black hands like some
sable windmill. This in itself would hardly have stopped even a lingering
train. But there came out of him a cry which was talked of afterwards as
something utterly unnatural and new. It was one of those shouts that are
horridly distinct even when we cannot hear what is shouted. The word in this
case was “Murder!”
But the
engine-driver swears he would have pulled up just the same if he had heard only
the dreadful and definite accent and not the word.
The train once
arrested, the most superficial stare could take in many features of the
tragedy. The man in black on the green bank was Sir Aaron Armstrong's
man-servant Magnus. The baronet in his optimism had often laughed at the black
gloves of this dismal attendant; but no one was likely to laugh at him just
now.
So soon as an
inquirer or two had stepped off the line and across the smoky hedge, they saw,
rolled down almost to the bottom of the bank, the body of an old man in a
yellow dressing-gown with a very vivid scarlet lining. A scrap of rope seemed
caught about his leg, entangled presumably in a struggle. There was a smear or
so of blood, though very little; but the body was bent or broken into a posture
impossible to any living thing. It was Sir Aaron Armstrong. A few more
bewildered moments brought out a big fair-bearded man, whom some travellers
could salute as the dead man's secretary, Patrick Royce, once well known in
Bohemian society and even famous in the Bohemian arts. In a manner more vague,
but even more convincing, he echoed the agony of the servant. By the time the
third figure of that household, Alice Armstrong, daughter of the dead man, had
come already tottering and waving into the garden, the engine-driver had put a
stop to his stoppage. The whistle had blown and the train had panted on to get
help from the next station.
Father Brown had
been thus rapidly summoned at the request of Patrick Royce, the big ex-Bohemian
secretary. Royce was an Irishman by birth; and that casual kind of Catholic
that never remembers his religion until he is really in a hole. But Royce's
request might have been less promptly complied with if one of the official
detectives had not been a friend and admirer of the unofficial Flambeau; and it
was impossible to be a friend of Flambeau without hearing numberless stories
about Father Brown. Hence, while the young detective (whose name was Merton)
led the little priest across the fields to the railway, their talk was more
confidential than could be expected between two total strangers.
“As far as I can
see,” said Mr. Merton candidly, “there is no sense to be made of it at all.
There is nobody one can suspect. Magnus is a solemn old fool; far too much of a
fool to be an assassin. Royce has been the baronet's best friend for years; and
his daughter undoubtedly adored him. Besides, it's all too absurd. Who would
kill such a cheery old chap as Armstrong? Who could dip his hands in the gore
of an after-dinner speaker? It would be like killing Father Christmas.”
“Yes, it was a
cheery house,” assented Father Brown. “It was a cheery house while he was
alive. Do you think it will be cheery now he is dead?”
Merton started a
little and regarded his companion with an enlivened eye. “Now he is dead?” he
repeated.
“Yes,” continued
the priest stolidly, “he was cheerful. But did he communicate his cheerfulness?
Frankly, was anyone else in the house cheerful but he?”
A window in
Merton's mind let in that strange light of surprise in which we see for the
first time things we have known all along. He had often been to the
Armstrongs', on little police jobs of the philanthropist; and, now he came to
think of it, it was in itself a depressing house. The rooms were very high and
very cold; the decoration mean and provincial; the draughty corridors were lit
by electricity that was bleaker than moonlight. And though the old man's
scarlet face and silver beard had blazed like a bonfire in each room or passage
in turn, it did not leave any warmth behind it. Doubtless this spectral
discomfort in the place was partly due to the very vitality and exuberance of
its owner; he needed no stoves or lamps, he would say, but carried his own
warmth with him. But when Merton recalled the other inmates, he was compelled
to confess that they also were as shadows of their lord. The moody man-servant,
with his monstrous black gloves, was almost a nightmare; Royce, the secretary,
was solid enough, a big bull of a man, in tweeds, with a short beard; but the straw-coloured
beard was startlingly salted with grey like the tweeds, and the broad forehead
was barred with premature wrinkles. He was good-natured enough also, but it was
a sad sort of good-nature, almost a heart-broken sort— he had the general air
of being some sort of failure in life. As for Armstrong's daughter, it was
almost incredible that she was his daughter; she was so pallid in colour and
sensitive in outline. She was graceful, but there was a quiver in the very
shape of her that was like the lines of an aspen. Merton had sometimes wondered
if she had learnt to quail at the crash of the passing trains.
“You see,” said
Father Brown, blinking modestly, “I'm not sure that the Armstrong cheerfulness
is so very cheerful—for other people. You say that nobody could kill such a
happy old man, but I'm not sure; ne nos inducas in tentationem. If ever I
murdered somebody,” he added quite simply, “I dare say it might be an
Optimist.”
“Why?” cried
Merton amused. “Do you think people dislike cheerfulness?”
“People like
frequent laughter,” answered Father Brown, “but I don't think they like a
permanent smile. Cheerfulness without humour is a very trying thing.”
They walked some
way in silence along the windy grassy bank by the rail, and just as they came
under the far-flung shadow of the tall Armstrong house, Father Brown said
suddenly, like a man throwing away a troublesome thought rather than offering
it seriously: “Of course, drink is neither good nor bad in itself. But I can't
help sometimes feeling that men like Armstrong want an occasional glass of wine
to sadden them.”
Merton's official
superior, a grizzled and capable detective named Gilder, was standing on the
green bank waiting for the coroner, talking to Patrick Royce, whose big
shoulders and bristly beard and hair towered above him. This was the more
noticeable because Royce walked always with a sort of powerful stoop, and
seemed to be going about his small clerical and domestic duties in a heavy and
humbled style, like a buffalo drawing a go-cart.
He raised his
head with unusual pleasure at the sight of the priest, and took him a few paces
apart. Meanwhile Merton was addressing the older detective respectfully indeed,
but not without a certain boyish impatience.
“Well, Mr.
Gilder, have you got much farther with the mystery?”
“There is no
mystery,” replied Gilder, as he looked under dreamy eyelids at the rooks.
“Well, there is
for me, at any rate,” said Merton, smiling.
“It is simple
enough, my boy,” observed the senior investigator, stroking his grey, pointed
beard. “Three minutes after you'd gone for Mr. Royce's parson the whole thing
came out. You know that pasty-faced servant in the black gloves who stopped the
train?”
“I should know
him anywhere. Somehow he rather gave me the creeps.”
“Well,” drawled
Gilder, “when the train had gone on again, that man had gone too. Rather a cool
criminal, don't you think, to escape by the very train that went off for the
police?”
“You're pretty
sure, I suppose,” remarked the young man, “that he really did kill his master?”
“Yes, my son, I'm
pretty sure,” replied Gilder drily, “for the trifling reason that he has gone
off with twenty thousand pounds in papers that were in his master's desk. No,
the only thing worth calling a difficulty is how he killed him. The skull seems
broken as with some big weapon, but there's no weapon at all lying about, and
the murderer would have found it awkward to carry it away, unless the weapon
was too small to be noticed.”
“Perhaps the
weapon was too big to be noticed,” said the priest, with an odd little giggle.
Gilder looked
round at this wild remark, and rather sternly asked Brown what he meant.
“Silly way of
putting it, I know,” said Father Brown apologetically. “Sounds like a fairy
tale. But poor Armstrong was killed with a giant's club, a great green club,
too big to be seen, and which we call the earth. He was broken against this
green bank we are standing on.”
“How do you
mean?” asked the detective quickly.
Father Brown
turned his moon face up to the narrow facade of the house and blinked
hopelessly up. Following his eyes, they saw that right at the top of this
otherwise blind back quarter of the building, an attic window stood open.
“Don't you see,” he
explained, pointing a little awkwardly like a child, “he was thrown down from
there?”
Gilder frowningly
scrutinised the window, and then said: “Well, it is certainly possible. But I
don't see why you are so sure about it.”
Brown opened his
grey eyes wide. “Why,” he said, “there's a bit of rope round the dead man's
leg. Don't you see that other bit of rope up there caught at the corner of the
window?”
At that height
the thing looked like the faintest particle of dust or hair, but the shrewd old
investigator was satisfied. “You're quite right, sir,” he said to Father Brown;
“that is certainly one to you.”
Almost as he
spoke a special train with one carriage took the curve of the line on their
left, and, stopping, disgorged another group of policemen, in whose midst was
the hangdog visage of Magnus, the absconded servant.
“By Jove! they've
got him,” cried Gilder, and stepped forward with quite a new alertness.
“Have you got the
money!” he cried to the first policeman.
The man looked
him in the face with a rather curious expression and said: “No.” Then he added:
“At least, not here.”
“Which is the
inspector, please?” asked the man called Magnus.
When he spoke
everyone instantly understood how this voice had stopped a train. He was a
dull-looking man with flat black hair, a colourless face, and a faint
suggestion of the East in the level slits in his eyes and mouth. His blood and
name, indeed, had remained dubious, ever since Sir Aaron had “rescued” him from
a waitership in a London restaurant, and (as some said) from more infamous
things. But his voice was as vivid as his face was dead. Whether through
exactitude in a foreign language, or in deference to his master (who had been
somewhat deaf), Magnus's tones had a peculiarly ringing and piercing quality,
and the whole group quite jumped when he spoke.
“I always knew
this would happen,” he said aloud with brazen blandness. “My poor old master
made game of me for wearing black; but I always said I should be ready for his
funeral.”
And he made a
momentary movement with his two dark-gloved hands.
“Sergeant,” said
Inspector Gilder, eyeing the black hands with wrath, “aren't you putting the
bracelets on this fellow; he looks pretty dangerous.”
“Well, sir,” said
the sergeant, with the same odd look of wonder, “I don't know that we can.”
“What do you
mean?” asked the other sharply. “Haven't you arrested him?”
A faint scorn
widened the slit-like mouth, and the whistle of an approaching train seemed
oddly to echo the mockery.
“We arrested
him,” replied the sergeant gravely, “just as he was coming out of the police
station at Highgate, where he had deposited all his master's money in the care
of Inspector Robinson.”
Gilder looked at
the man-servant in utter amazement. “Why on earth did you do that?” he asked of
Magnus.
“To keep it safe
from the criminal, of course,” replied that person placidly.
“Surely,” said
Gilder, “Sir Aaron's money might have been safely left with Sir Aaron's
family.”
The tail of his
sentence was drowned in the roar of the train as it went rocking and clanking;
but through all the hell of noises to which that unhappy house was periodically
subject, they could hear the syllables of Magnus's answer, in all their
bell-like distinctness: “I have no reason to feel confidence in Sir Aaron's
family.”
All the
motionless men had the ghostly sensation of the presence of some new person;
and Merton was scarcely surprised when he looked up and saw the pale face of
Armstrong's daughter over Father Brown's shoulder. She was still young and
beautiful in a silvery style, but her hair was of so dusty and hueless a brown
that in some shadows it seemed to have turned totally grey.
“Be careful what
you say,” said Royce gruffly, “you'll frighten Miss Armstrong.”
“I hope so,” said
the man with the clear voice.
As the woman winced
and everyone else wondered, he went on: “I am somewhat used to Miss Armstrong's
tremors. I have seen her trembling off and on for years. And some said she was
shaking with cold and some she was shaking with fear, but I know she was
shaking with hate and wicked anger— fiends that have had their feast this
morning. She would have been away by now with her lover and all the money but
for me. Ever since my poor old master prevented her from marrying that tipsy
blackguard—”
“Stop,” said
Gilder very sternly. “We have nothing to do with your family fancies or
suspicions. Unless you have some practical evidence, your mere opinions—”
“Oh! I'll give
you practical evidence,” cut in Magnus, in his hacking accent. “You'll have to
subpoena me, Mr. Inspector, and I shall have to tell the truth. And the truth
is this: An instant after the old man was pitched bleeding out of the window, I
ran into the attic, and found his daughter swooning on the floor with a red
dagger still in her hand. Allow me to hand that also to the proper
authorities.” He took from his tail-pocket a long horn-hilted knife with a red
smear on it, and handed it politely to the sergeant. Then he stood back again,
and his slits of eyes almost faded from his face in one fat Chinese sneer.
Merton felt an
almost bodily sickness at the sight of him; and he muttered to Gilder: “Surely
you would take Miss Armstrong's word against his?”
Father Brown
suddenly lifted a face so absurdly fresh that it looked somehow as if he had
just washed it. “Yes,” he said, radiating innocence, “but is Miss Armstrong's
word against his?”
The girl uttered
a startled, singular little cry; everyone looked at her. Her figure was rigid
as if paralysed; only her face within its frame of faint brown hair was alive
with an appalling surprise. She stood like one of a sudden lassooed and
throttled.
“This man,” said
Mr. Gilder gravely, “actually says that you were found grasping a knife,
insensible, after the murder.”
“He says the
truth,” answered Alice.
The next fact of
which they were conscious was that Patrick Royce strode with his great stooping
head into their ring and uttered the singular words: “Well, if I've got to go,
I'll have a bit of pleasure first.”
His huge shoulder
heaved and he sent an iron fist smash into Magnus's bland Mongolian visage,
laying him on the lawn as flat as a starfish. Two or three of the police
instantly put their hands on Royce; but to the rest it seemed as if all reason
had broken up and the universe were turning into a brainless harlequinade.
“None of that,
Mr. Royce,” Gilder had called out authoritatively. “I shall arrest you for
assault.”
“No, you won't,”
answered the secretary in a voice like an iron gong, “you will arrest me for
murder.”
Gilder threw an
alarmed glance at the man knocked down; but since that outraged person was
already sitting up and wiping a little blood off a substantially uninjured
face, he only said shortly: “What do you mean?”
“It is quite
true, as this fellow says,” explained Royce, “that Miss Armstrong fainted with
a knife in her hand. But she had not snatched the knife to attack her father,
but to defend him.”
“To defend him,”
repeated Gilder gravely. “Against whom?”
“Against me,”
answered the secretary.
Alice looked at
him with a complex and baffling face; then she said in a low voice: “After it
all, I am still glad you are brave.”
“Come upstairs,”
said Patrick Royce heavily, “and I will show you the whole cursed thing.”
The attic, which
was the secretary's private place (and rather a small cell for so large a
hermit), had indeed all the vestiges of a violent drama. Near the centre of the
floor lay a large revolver as if flung away; nearer to the left was rolled a
whisky bottle, open but not quite empty. The cloth of the little table lay
dragged and trampled, and a length of cord, like that found on the corpse, was
cast wildly across the windowsill. Two vases were smashed on the mantelpiece
and one on the carpet.
“I was drunk,”
said Royce; and this simplicity in the prematurely battered man somehow had the
pathos of the first sin of a baby.
“You all know
about me,” he continued huskily; “everybody knows how my story began, and it
may as well end like that too. I was called a clever man once, and might have
been a happy one; Armstrong saved the remains of a brain and body from the taverns,
and was always kind to me in his own way, poor fellow! Only he wouldn't let me
marry Alice here; and it will always be said that he was right enough. Well,
you can form your own conclusions, and you won't want me to go into details.
That is my whisky bottle half emptied in the corner; that is my revolver quite
emptied on the carpet. It was the rope from my box that was found on the
corpse, and it was from my window the corpse was thrown. You need not set
detectives to grub up my tragedy; it is a common enough weed in this world. I
give myself to the gallows; and, by God, that is enough!”
At a sufficiently
delicate sign, the police gathered round the large man to lead him away; but
their unobtrusiveness was somewhat staggered by the remarkable appearance of
Father Brown, who was on his hands and knees on the carpet in the doorway, as
if engaged in some kind of undignified prayers. Being a person utterly
insensible to the social figure he cut, he remained in this posture, but turned
a bright round face up at the company, presenting the appearance of a quadruped
with a very comic human head.
“I say,” he said
good-naturedly, “this really won't do at all, you know. At the beginning you
said we'd found no weapon. But now we're finding too many; there's the knife to
stab, and the rope to strangle, and the pistol to shoot; and after all he broke
his neck by falling out of a window! It won't do. It's not economical.” And he
shook his head at the ground as a horse does grazing.
Inspector Gilder
had opened his mouth with serious intentions, but before he could speak the
grotesque figure on the floor had gone on quite volubly.
“And now three
quite impossible things. First, these holes in the carpet, where the six
bullets have gone in. Why on earth should anybody fire at the carpet? A drunken
man lets fly at his enemy's head, the thing that's grinning at him. He doesn't
pick a quarrel with his feet, or lay siege to his slippers. And then there's
the rope”—and having done with the carpet the speaker lifted his hands and put
them in his pocket, but continued unaffectedly on his knees—”in what
conceivable intoxication would anybody try to put a rope round a man's neck and
finally put it round his leg? Royce, anyhow, was not so drunk as that, or he
would be sleeping like a log by now. And, plainest of all, the whisky bottle.
You suggest a dipsomaniac fought for the whisky bottle, and then having won,
rolled it away in a corner, spilling one half and leaving the other. That is
the very last thing a dipsomaniac would do.”
He scrambled
awkwardly to his feet, and said to the self-accused murderer in tones of limpid
penitence: “I'm awfully sorry, my dear sir, but your tale is really rubbish.”
“Sir,” said Alice
Armstrong in a low tone to the priest, “can I speak to you alone for a moment?”
This request
forced the communicative cleric out of the gangway, and before he could speak
in the next room, the girl was talking with strange incisiveness.
“You are a clever
man,” she said, “and you are trying to save Patrick, I know. But it's no use.
The core of all this is black, and the more things you find out the more there
will be against the miserable man I love.”
“Why?” asked
Brown, looking at her steadily.
“Because,” she
answered equally steadily, “I saw him commit the crime myself.”
“Ah!” said the
unmoved Brown, “and what did he do?”
“I was in this
room next to them,” she explained; “both doors were closed, but I suddenly
heard a voice, such as I had never heard on earth, roaring “Hell, hell, hell,'
again and again, and then the two doors shook with the first explosion of the
revolver. Thrice again the thing banged before I got the two doors open and
found the room full of smoke; but the pistol was smoking in my poor, mad
Patrick's hand; and I saw him fire the last murderous volley with my own eyes.
Then he leapt on my father, who was clinging in terror to the window-sill, and,
grappling, tried to strangle him with the rope, which he threw over his head,
but which slipped over his struggling shoulders to his feet. Then it tightened
round one leg and Patrick dragged him along like a maniac. I snatched a knife
from the mat, and, rushing between them, managed to cut the rope before I
fainted.”
“I see,” said
Father Brown, with the same wooden civility. “Thank you.”
As the girl
collapsed under her memories, the priest passed stiffly into the next room,
where he found Gilder and Merton alone with Patrick Royce, who sat in a chair,
handcuffed. There he said to the Inspector submissively:
“Might I say a
word to the prisoner in your presence; and might he take off those funny cuffs
for a minute?”
“He is a very
powerful man,” said Merton in an undertone. “Why do you want them taken off?”
“Why, I thought,”
replied the priest humbly, “that perhaps I might have the very great honour of
shaking hands with him.”
Both detectives
stared, and Father Brown added: “Won't you tell them about it, sir?”
The man on the
chair shook his tousled head, and the priest turned impatiently.
“Then I will,” he
said. “Private lives are more important than public reputations. I am going to
save the living, and let the dead bury their dead.”
He went to the
fatal window, and blinked out of it as he went on talking.
“I told you that
in this case there were too many weapons and only one death. I tell you now
that they were not weapons, and were not used to cause death. All those grisly
tools, the noose, the bloody knife, the exploding pistol, were instruments of a
curious mercy. They were not used to kill Sir Aaron, but to save him.”
“To save him!”
repeated Gilder. “And from what?”
“From himself,”
said Father Brown. “He was a suicidal maniac.”
“What?” cried
Merton in an incredulous tone. “And the Religion of Cheerfulness—”
“It is a cruel
religion,” said the priest, looking out of the window. “Why couldn't they let
him weep a little, like his fathers before him? His plans stiffened, his views
grew cold; behind that merry mask was the empty mind of the atheist. At last,
to keep up his hilarious public level, he fell back on that dram-drinking he
had abandoned long ago. But there is this horror about alcoholism in a sincere
teetotaler: that he pictures and expects that psychological inferno from which
he has warned others. It leapt upon poor Armstrong prematurely, and by this
morning he was in such a case that he sat here and cried he was in hell, in so
crazy a voice that his daughter did not know it. He was mad for death, and with
the monkey tricks of the mad he had scattered round him death in many shapes—a
running noose and his friend's revolver and a knife. Royce entered accidentally
and acted in a flash. He flung the knife on the mat behind him, snatched up the
revolver, and having no time to unload it, emptied it shot after shot all over
the floor. The suicide saw a fourth shape of death, and made a dash for the
window. The rescuer did the only thing he could—ran after him with the rope and
tried to tie him hand and foot. Then it was that the unlucky girl ran in, and
misunderstanding the struggle, strove to slash her father free. At first she
only slashed poor Royce's knuckles, from which has come all the little blood in
this affair. But, of course, you noticed that he left blood, but no wound, on
that servant's face? Only before the poor woman swooned, she did hack her
father loose, so that he went crashing through that window into eternity.”
There was a long
stillness slowly broken by the metallic noises of Gilder unlocking the
handcuffs of Patrick Royce, to whom he said: “I think I should have told the
truth, sir. You and the young lady are worth more than Armstrong's obituary
notices.”
“Confound
Armstrong's notices,” cried Royce roughly. “Don't you see it was because she mustn't
know?”
“Mustn't know
what?” asked Merton.
“Why, that she
killed her father, you fool!” roared the other. “He'd have been alive now but
for her. It might craze her to know that.”
“No, I don't
think it would,” remarked Father Brown, as he picked up his hat. “I rather
think I should tell her. Even the most murderous blunders don't poison life
like sins; anyhow, I think you may both be the happier now. I've got to go back
to the Deaf School.”
As he went out on
to the gusty grass an acquaintance from Highgate stopped him and said:
“The Coroner has
arrived. The inquiry is just going to begin.”
“I've got to get back to the